Title: The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle
Subject:
Author: Anonymous
Keywords:
Creator:
PDF Version: 1.2
Page No 1
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Anonymous
Page No 2
Table of Contents
The AngloSaxon Chronicle..............................................................................................................................1
Anonymous ..............................................................................................................................................1
PREPARER'S NOTE: .............................................................................................................................1
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] ........................................................2
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE .................................................................................................10
Part I .......................................................................................................................................................10
Part II.....................................................................................................................................................28
Part III....................................................................................................................................................45
Part IV ....................................................................................................................................................60
Part V.....................................................................................................................................................74
Part VI ....................................................................................................................................................87
Part VII .................................................................................................................................................100
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
i
Page No 3
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Anonymous
Translation by Rev. James Ingram
Preparer's Note
Introduction
Part 1: A.D. 1 748
Part 2: A.D. 750 919
Part 3: A.D. 920 1014
Part 4: A.D. 1015 1051
Part 5: A.D. 1052 1069
Part 6: A.D. 1070 1101
Part 7: A.D. 1102 1154
Originally compiled on the orders of King Alfred the Great,
approximately A.D. 890, and subsequently maintained and added to by
generations of anonymous scribes until the middle of the 12th Century.
The original language is AngloSaxon (Old English), but later entries
are essentially Middle English in tone.
Translation by Rev. James Ingram (London, 1823), with additional readings from the translation of Dr. J.A.
Giles (London, 1847).
PREPARER'S NOTE:
At present there are nine known versions or fragments of the "AngloSaxon Chronicle" in existence, all of
which vary (sometimes greatly) in content and quality. The translation that follows is not a translation of any
one Chronicle; rather, it is a collation of readings from many different versions. The nine known
"AngloSaxon Chronicle" MS. are the following: APrime The Parker Chronicle (Corpus Christi College,
Cambridge, MS. 173) A Cottonian Fragment (British Museum, Cotton MS. Otho B xi, 2) B The Abingdon
Chronicle I (British Museum, Cotton MS. Tiberius A vi.) C The Abingdon Chronicle II (British Museum,
Cotton MS. Tiberius B i.) D The Worcester Chronicle (British Museum, Cotton MS.Tiberius B iv.) E The
Laud (or "Peterborough") Chronicle (Bodleian, MS.Laud 636) F The Bilingual Canterbury Epitome (British
Museum, Cotton MS. Domitian A viii.) NOTE: Entries in English and Latin. H Cottonian Fragment (British
Museum, Cotton MS. Domitian A ix.) I An Easter Table Chronicle (British Museum, Cotton MS.Caligula A
xv.) This electronic edition contains primarily the translation of Rev. James Ingram, as published in the
Everyman edition of this text. Excerpts from the translation of Dr. J.A. Giles were included as an appendix in
the Everyman edition; the preparer of this edition has elected to collate these entries into the main text of the
translation. Where these collations have occurred I have marked the entry with a double parenthesis (()).
WARNING: While I have elected to include the footnotes of Rev. Ingram in this edition, please note that
they should be used with extreme care. In many cases the views expressed by Rev. Ingram are severally out
of date, having been superseded by almost 175 years of active scholarship. At best, these notes will provide a
starting point for inquiry. They should not, however, be treated as absolute. Douglas B. Killings
The AngloSaxon Chronicle 1
Page No 4
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823]
England may boast of two substantial monuments of its early history; to either of which it would not be easy
to find a parallel in any nation, ancient or modern. These are, the Record of Doomsday (1) and the "Saxon
Chronicle" (2). The former, which is little more than a statistical survey, but contains the most authentic
information relative to the descent of property and the comparative importance of the different parts of the
kingdom at a very interesting period, the wisdom and liberality of the British Parliament long since deemed
worthy of being printed (3) among the Public Records, by Commissioners appointed for that purpose. The
other work, though not treated with absolute neglect, has not received that degree of attention which every
person who feels an interest in the events and transactions of former times would naturally expect. In the first
place, it has never been printed entire, from a collation of all the MSS. But of the extent of the two former
editions, compared with the present, the reader may form some idea, when he is told that Professor Wheloc's
"Chronologia AngloSaxonica", which was the first attempt (4) of the kind, published at Cambridge in 1644,
is comprised in less than 62 folio pages, exclusive of the Latin appendix. The improved edition by Edmund
Gibson, afterwards Bishop of London, printed at Oxford in 1692, exhibits nearly four times the quantity of
the former; but is very far from being the entire (5) chronicle, as the editor considered it. The text of the
present edition, it was found, could not be compressed within a shorter compass than 374 pages, though the
editor has suppressed many notes and illustrations, which may be thought necessary to the general reader.
Some variations in the MSS. may also still remain unnoticed; partly because they were considered of little
importance, and partly from an apprehension, lest the commentary, as it sometimes happens, should seem an
unwieldy burthen, rather than a necessary appendage, to the text. Indeed, till the editor had made some
progress in the work, he could not have imagined that so many original and authentic materials of our history
still remained unpublished.
To those who are unacquainted with this monument of our national antiquities, two questions appear requisite
to be answered: "What does it contain?" and, "By whom was it written?" The indulgence of the critical
antiquary is solicited, whilst we endeavour to answer, in some degree, each of these questions.
To the first question we answer, that the "Saxon Chronicle" contains the original and authentic testimony of
contemporary writers to the most important transactions of our forefathers, both by sea and land, from their
first arrival in this country to the year 1154. Were we to descend to particulars, it would require a volume to
discuss the great variety of subjects which it embraces. Suffice it to say, that every reader will here find many
interesting facts relative to our architecture, our agriculture, our coinage, our commerce, our naval and
military glory, our laws, our liberty, and our religion. In this edition, also, will be found numerous specimens
of Saxon poetry, never before printed, which might form the groundwork of an introductory volume to
Warton's elaborate annals of English Poetry. Philosophically considered, this ancient record is the second
great phenomenon in the history of mankind. For, if we except the sacred annals of the Jews, contained in the
several books of the Old Testament, there is no other work extant, ancient or modern, which exhibits at one
view a regular and chronological panorama of a PEOPLE, described in rapid succession by different writers,
through so many ages, in their own vernacular LANGUAGE. Hence it may safely be considered, nor only as
the primaeval source from which all subsequent historians of English affairs have principally derived their
materials, and consequently the criterion by which they are to be judged, but also as the faithful depository of
our national idiom; affording, at the same time, to the scientific investigator of the human mind a very
interesting and extraordinary example of the changes incident to a language, as well as to a nation, in its
progress from rudeness to refinement.
But that the reader may more clearly see how much we are indebted to the "Saxon Chronicle", it will be
necessary to examine what is contained in other sources of our history, prior to the accession of Henry II., the
period wherein this invaluable record terminates.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 2
Page No 5
The most ancient historian of our own island, whose work has been preserved, is Gildas, who flourished in
the latter part of the sixth century. British antiquaries of the present day will doubtless forgive me, if I leave
in their original obscurity the prophecies of Merlin, and the exploits of King Arthur, with all the Knights of
the Round Table, as scarcely coming within the verge of history. Notwithstanding, also, the authority of Bale,
and of the writers whom he follows, I cannot persuade myself to rank Joseph of Arimathea, Arviragus, and
Bonduca, or even the Emperor Constantine himself, among the illustrious writers of Great Britain. I begin,
therefore, with Gildas; because, though he did not compile a regular history of the island, he has left us,
amidst a cumbrous mass of pompous rhapsody and querulous declamation some curious descriptions of the
character and manners of the inhabitants; not only the Britons and Saxons, but the Picts and Scots (6). There
are also some parts of his work, almost literally transcribed by Bede, which confirm the brief statements of
the "Saxon Chronicle" (7). But there is, throughout, such a want of precision and simplicity, such a
barrenness of facts amidst a multiplicity of words, such a scantiness of names of places and persons, of dates,
and other circumstances, that we are obliged to have recourse to the Saxon Annals, or to Venerable Bede, to
supply the absence of those two great lights of history Chronology and Topography.
The next historian worth notice here is Nennius, who is supposed to have flourished in the seventh century:
but the work ascribed to him is so full of interpolations and corruptions, introduced by his transcribers, and
particularly by a simpleton who is called Samuel, or his master Beulanus, or both, who appear to have lived
in the ninth century, that it is difficult to say how much of this motley production is original and authentic. Be
that as it may, the writer of the copy printed by Gale bears ample testimony to the "Saxon Chronicle", and
says expressly, that he compiled his history partly from the records of the Scots and Saxons (8). At the end is
a confused but very curious appendix, containing that very genealogy, with some brief notices of Saxon
affairs, which the fastidiousness of Beulanus, or of his amanuensis, the aforesaid Samuel, would not allow
him to transcribe. This writer, although he professes to be the first historiographer (9) of the Britons, has
sometimes repeated the very words of Gildas (10); whose name is even prefixed to some copies of the work.
It is a puerile composition, without judgment, selection, or method (11); filled with legendary tales of Trojan
antiquity, of magical delusion, and of the miraculous exploits of St. Germain and St. Patrick: not to mention
those of the valiant Arthur, who is said to have felled to the ground in one day, singlehanded, eight hundred
and forty Saxons! It is remarkable, that this taste for the marvelous, which does not seem to be adapted to the
sober sense of Englishmen, was afterwards revived in all its glory by Geoffrey of Monmouth in the Norman
age of credulity and romance.
We come now to a more cheering prospect; and behold a steady light reflected on the "Saxon Chronicle" by
the "Ecclesiastical History" of Bede; a writer who, without the intervention of any legendary tale, truly
deserves the title of Venerable (12). With a store of classical learning not very common in that age, and with
a simplicity of language seldom found in monastic Latinity, he has moulded into something like a regular
form the scattered fragments of Roman, British, Scottish, and Saxon history. His work, indeed. is professedly
ecclesiastical; but, when we consider the prominent station which the Church had at this time assumed in
England, we need not be surprised if we find therein the same intermixture of civil, military, and
ecclesiastical affairs, which forms so remarkable a feature in the "Saxon Chronicle". Hence Gibson
concludes, that many passages of the latter description were derived from the work of Bede (13). He thinks
the same of the description of Britain, the notices of the Roman emperors, and the detail of the first arrival of
the Saxons. But, it may be observed, those passages to which he alludes are not to be found in the earlier
MSS. The description of Britain, which forms the introduction, and refers us to a period antecedent to the
invasion of Julius Caesar; appears only in three copies of the "Chronicle"; two of which are of so late a date
as the Norman Conquest, and both derived from the same source. Whatever relates to the succession of the
Roman emperors was so universally known, that it must be considered as common property: and so short was
the interval between the departure of the Romans and the arrival of the Saxons, that the latter must have
preserved amongst them sufficient memorials and traditions to connect their own history with that of their
predecessors. Like all rude nations, they were particularly attentive to genealogies; and these, together with
the succession of their kings, their battles, and their conquests, must be derived originally from the Saxons
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 3
Page No 6
themselves. and not from Gildas, or Nennius, or Bede (14). Gibson himself was so convinced of this, that he
afterwards attributes to the "Saxon Chronicle" all the knowledge we have of those early times (15).
Moreover, we might ask, if our whole dependence had been centered in Bede, what would have become of us
after his death? (16) Malmsbury indeed asserts, with some degree of vanity, that you will not easily find a
Latin historian of English affairs between Bede and himself (17); and in the fulness of selfcomplacency
professes his determination, "to season with Roman salt the barbarisms of his native tongue!" He affects great
contempt for Ethelwerd, whose work will be considered hereafter; and he well knew how unacceptable any
praise of the "Saxon Annals" would be to the Normans, with whom he was connected (18). He thinks it
necessary to give his reasons, on one occasion, for inserting from these very "Annals" what he did not find in
Bede; though it is obvious, that the best part of his materials, almost to his own times, is derived from the
same source.
The object of Bishop Asser, the biographer of Alfred, who comes next in order, was to deliver to posterity a
complete memorial of that sovereign, and of the transactions of his reign. To him alone are we indebted for
the detail of many interesting circumstances in the life and character of his royal patron (19); but most of the
public transactions will be found in the pages of the "Saxon Chronicle": some passages of which he appears
to have translated so literally, that the modern version of Gibson does not more closely represent the original.
In the editions of Parker, Camden, and Wise, the last notice of any public event refers to the year 887. The
interpolated copy of Gale, called by some PseudoAsserius, and by others the Chronicle of St. Neot's, is
extended to the year 914 (20). Much difference of opinion exists respecting this work; into the discussion of
which it is not our present purpose to enter. One thing is remarkable: it contains the vision of Drihtelm,
copied from Bede, and that of Charles King of the Franks, which Malmsbury thought it worth while to repeat
in his "History of the Kings of England". What Gale observes concerning the "fidelity" with which these
annals of Asser are copied by Marianus, is easily explained. They both translated from the "Saxon
Chronicle", as did also Florence of Worcester, who interpolated Marianus; of whom we shall speak hereafter.
But the most faithful and extraordinary follower of the "Saxon Annals" is Ethelwerd; who seems to have
disregarded almost all other sources of information. One great error, however, he committed; for which
Malmsbury does nor spare him. Despairing of the reputation of classical learning, if he had followed the
simplicity of the Saxon original, he fell into a sort of measured and inverted prose, peculiar to himself; which,
being at first sufficiently obscure, is sometimes rendered almost unintelligible by the incorrect manner in
which it has been printed. His authority, nevertheless, in an historical point of view, is very respectable.
Being one of the few writers untainted by monastic prejudice (21), he does not travel out of his way to
indulge in legendary tales and romantic visions. Critically considered, his work is the best commentary on the
"Saxon Chronicle" to the year 977; at which period one of the MSS. which he seems to have followed,
terminates. Brevity and compression seem to have been his aim, because the compilation was intended to be
sent abroad for the instruction of a female relative of high rank in Germany (22), at her request. But there are,
nevertheless, some circumstances recorded which are not to be found elsewhere; so that a reference to this
epitome of Saxon history will be sometimes useful in illustrating the early part of the "Chronicle"; though
Gibson, I know not on what account, has scarcely once quoted it.
During the sanguinary conflicts of the eleventh century, which ended first in the temporary triumph of the
Danes, and afterwards in the total subjugation of the country by the Normans, literary pursuits, as might be
expected, were so much neglected, that scarcely a Latin writer is to be found: but the "Saxon Chronicle" has
preserved a regular and minute detail of occurrences, as they passed along, of which subsequent historians
were glad to avail themselves. For nearly a century after the Conquest, the Saxon annalists appear to have
been chiefly eyewitnesses of the transactions which they relate (23). The policy of the Conqueror led him by
degrees to employ Saxons as well as Normans: and William II. found them the most faithful of his subjects:
but such an influx of foreigners naturally corrupted the ancient language; till at length, after many foreign and
domestic wars, tranquillity being restored on the accession of Henry II., literature revived; a taste for
composition increased; and the compilation of Latin histories of English and foreign affairs, blended and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 4
Page No 7
diversified with the fabled romance and legendary tale, became the ordinary path to distinction. It is
remarkable, that when the "Saxon Chronicle" ends, Geoffrey of Monmouth begins. Almost every great
monastery about this time had its historian: but some still adhered to the ancient method. Florence of
Worcester, an interpolator of Marianus, as we before observed, closely follows Bede, Asser, and the "Saxon
Chronicle" (24). The same may be observed of the annals of Gisburne, of Margan, of Meiros, of Waverley,
etc.; some of which are anonymous compilations, whilst others have the name of an author, or rather
transcriber; for very few aspired to the character of authors or original historians. Thomas Wikes, a canon of
Oseney, who compiled a Latin chronicle of English affairs from the Conquest to the year 1304, tells us
expressly, that he did this, not because he could add much to the histories of Bede, William of Newburgh, and
Matthew Paris, but "propter minores, quibus non suppetit copia librorum." (25) Before the invention of
printing, it was necessary that numerous copies of historical works should be transcribed, for the instruction
of those who had not access to libraries. The transcribers frequently added something of their own, and
abridged or omitted what they thought less interesting. Hence the endless variety of interpolators and
deflorators of English history. William of Malmsbury, indeed, deserves to be selected from all his
competitors for the superiority of his genius; but he is occasionally inaccurate, and negligent of dates and
other minor circumstances; insomuch that his modern translator has corrected some mistakes, and supplied
the deficiencies in his chronology, by a reference to the "Saxon Chronicle". Henry of Huntingdon, when he is
not transcribing Bede, or translating the "Saxon Annals", may be placed on the same shelf with Geoffrey of
Monmouth.
As I have now brought the reader to the period when our "Chronicle" terminates, I shall dismiss without
much ceremony the succeeding writers, who have partly borrowed from this source; Simon of Durham, who
transcribes Florence of Worcester, the two priors of Hexham, Gervase, Hoveden, Bromton, Stubbes, the two
Matthews, of Paris and Westminster, and many others, considering that sufficient has been said to convince
those who may not have leisure or opportunity to examine the matter themselves, that however numerous are
the Latin historians of English affairs, almost everything original and authentic, and essentially conducive to
a correct knowledge of our general history, to the period above mentioned, may be traced to the "Saxon
Annals".
It is now time to examine, who were probably the writers of these "Annals". I say probably, because we have
very little more than rational conjecture to guide us.
The period antecedent to the times of Bede, except where passages were afterwards inserted, was perhaps
little else, originally, than a kind of chronological table of events, with a few genealogies, and notices of the
death and succession of kings and other distinguished personages. But it is evident from the preface of Bede
and from many passages in his work, that he received considerable assistance from Saxon bishops, abbots,
and others; who not only communicated certain traditionary facts "viva voce", but also transmitted to him
many written documents. These, therefore, must have been the early chronicles of Wessex, of Kent, and of
the other provinces of the Heptarchy; which formed together the groundwork of his history. With greater
honesty than most of his followers, he has given us the names of those learned persons who assisted him with
this local information. The first is Alcuinus or Albinus, an abbot of Canterbury, at whose instigation he
undertook the work; who sent by Nothelm, afterwards archbishop of that province, a full account of all
ecclesiastical transactions in Kent, and in the contiguous districts, from the first conversion of the Saxons.
From the same source he partly derived his information respecting the provinces of Essex, Wessex, East
Anglia, and Northumbria. Bishop Daniel communicated to him by letter many particulars concerning
Wessex, Sussex, and the Isle of Wight. He acknowledges assistance more than once "ex scriptis priorum";
and there is every reason to believe that some of these preceding records were the "AngloSaxon Annals";
for we have already seen that such records were in existence before the age of Nennius. In proof of this we
may observe, that even the phraseology sometimes partakes more of the Saxon idiom than the Latin. If,
therefore, it be admitted, as there is every reason to conclude from the foregoing remarks, that certain
succinct and chronological arrangements of historical facts had taken place in several provinces of the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 5
Page No 8
Heptarchy before the time of Bede, let us inquire by whom they were likely to have been made.
In the province of Kent, the first person on record, who is celebrated for his learning, is Tobias, the ninth
bishop of Rochester, who succeeded to that see in 693. He is noticed by Bede as not only furnished with an
ample store of Greek and Latin literature, but skilled also in the Saxon language and erudition (26). It is
probable, therefore, that he left some proofs of this attention to his native language and as he died within a
few years of Bede, the latter would naturally avail himself of his labours. It is worthy also of remark, that
Bertwald, who succeeded to the illustrious Theodore of Tarsus in 690, was the first English or Saxon
archbishop of Canterbury. From this period, consequently, we may date that cultivation of the vernacular
tongue which would lead to the composition of brief chronicles (27), and other vehicles of instruction,
necessary for the improvement of a rude and illiterate people. The first chronicles were, perhaps, those of
Kent or Wessex; which seem to have been regularly continued, at intervals. by the archbishops of Canterbury,
or by their direction (28), at least as far as the year 1001, or by even 1070; for the Benet MS., which some
call the Plegmund MS., ends in the latter year; the rest being in Latin. From internal evidence indeed, of an
indirect nature, there is great reason to presume, that Archbishop Plegmund transcribed or superintended this
very copy of the "Saxon Annals" to the year 891 (29); the year in which he came to the see; inserting, both
before and after this date, to the time of his death in 923, such additional materials as he was well qualified to
furnish from his high station and learning, and the confidential intercourse which he enjoyed in the court of
King Alfred. The total omission of his own name, except by another hand, affords indirect evidence of some
importance in support of this conjecture. Whether King Alfred himself was the author of a distinct and
separate chronicle of Wessex, cannot now be determined. That he furnished additional supplies of historical
matter to the older chronicles is, I conceive, sufficiently obvious to every reader who will take the trouble of
examining the subject. The argument of Dr. Beeke, the present Dean of Bristol, in an obliging letter to the
editor on this subject, is not without its force; that it is extremely improbable, when we consider the
number and variety of King Alfred's works, that he should have neglected the history, of his own country.
Besides a genealogy of the kings of Wessex from Cerdic to his own time, which seems never to have been
incorporated with any MS. of the "Saxon Chronicle", though prefixed or annexed to several, he undoubtedly
preserved many traditionary facts; with a full and circumstantial detail of his own operations, as well as those
of his father, brother, and other members of his family; which scarcely any other person than himself could
have supplied. To doubt this would be as incredulous a thing as to deny that Xenophon wrote his "Anabasis",
or Caesar his "Commentaries". From the time of Alfred and Plegmund to a few years after the Norman
Conquest, these chronicles seem to have been continued by different hands, under the auspices of such men
as Archbishops Dunstan, Aelfric, and others, whose characters have been much misrepresented by ignorance
and scepticism on the one hand; as well as by mistaken zeal and devotion on the other. The indirect evidence
respecting Dunstan and Aelfric is as curious as that concerning Plegmund; but the discussion of it would lead
us into a wide and barren field of investigation; nor is this the place to refute the errors of Hickes, Cave, and
Wharton, already noticed by Wanley in his preface. The chronicles of Abingdon, of Worcester, of
Peterborough, and others, are continued in the same manner by different hands; partly, though not
exclusively, by monks of those monasteries, who very naturally inserted many particulars relating to their
own local interests and concerns; which, so far from invalidating the general history, render it more
interesting and valuable. It would be a vain and frivolous attempt ascribe these latter compilations to
particular persons (31), where there were evidently so many contributors; but that they were successively
furnished by contemporary writers, many of whom were eyewitnesses of the events and transactions which
they relate, there is abundance of internal evidence to convince us. Many instances of this the editor had
taken some pains to collect, in order to lay them before the reader in the preface; but they are so numerous
that the subject would necessarily become tedious; and therefore every reader must be left to find them for
himself. They will amply repay him for his trouble, if he takes any interest in the early history of England, or
in the general construction of authentic history of any kind. He will see plagarisms without end in the Latin
histories, and will be in no danger of falling into the errors of Gale and others; not to mention those of our
historians who were not professed antiquaries, who mistook that for original and authentic testimony which
was only translated. It is remarkable that the "Saxon Chronicle" gradually expires with the Saxon language,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 6
Page No 9
almost melted into modern English, in the year 1154. From this period almost to the Reformation, whatever
knowledge we have of the affairs of England has been originally derived either from the semibarbarous
Latin of our own countrymen, or from the French chronicles of Froissart and others.
The revival of good taste and of good sense, and of the good old custom adopted by most nations of the
civilised world that of writing their own history in their own language was happily exemplified at
length in the laborious works of our English chroniclers and historians.
Many have since followed in the same track; and the importance of the whole body of English History has
attracted and employed the imagination of Milton, the philosophy of Hume, the simplicity of Goldsmith, the
industry of Henry, the research of Turner, and the patience of Lingard. The pages of these writers, however,
accurate and luminous as they generally are, as well as those of Brady, Tyrrell, Carte, Rapin, and others, not
to mention those in black letter, still require correction from the "Saxon Chronicle"; without which no person,
however learned, can possess anything beyond a superficial acquaintance with the elements of English
History, and of the British Constitution.
Some remarks may here be requisite on the CHRONOLOGY of the "Saxon Chronicle". In the early part of it
(32) the reader will observe a reference to the grand epoch of the creation of the world. So also in Ethelwerd,
who closely follows the "Saxon Annals". It is allowed by all, that considerable difficulty has occurred in
fixing the true epoch of Christ's nativity (33), because the Christian aera was not used at all till about the year
532 (34), when it was introduced by Dionysius Exiguus; whose code of canon law, joined afterwards with the
decretals of the popes, became as much the standard of authority in ecclesiastical matters as the pandects of
Justinian among civilians. But it does not appear that in the Saxon mode of computation this system of
chronology was implicitly followed. We mention this circumstance, however, not with a view of settling the
point of difference, which would not be easy, but merely to account for those variations observable m
different MSS.; which arose, not only from the common mistakes or inadvertencies of transcribers, but from
the liberty which the original writers themselves sometimes assumed in this country, of computing the current
year according to their own ephemeral or local custom. Some began with the Incarnation or Nativity of
Christ; some with the Circumcision, which accords with the solar year of the Romans as now restored; whilst
others commenced with the Annunciation; a custom which became very prevalent in honour of the Virgin
Mary, and was not formally abolished here till the year 1752; when the Gregorian calendar, commonly called
the New Style, was substituted by Act of Parliament for the Dionysian. This diversity of computation would
alone occasion some confusion; but in addition to this, the INDICTION, or cycle of fifteen years, which is
mentioned in the latter part of the "Saxon Chronicle", was carried back three years before the vulgar aera, and
commenced in different places at four different periods of the year! But it is very remarkable that, whatever
was the commencement of the year in the early part of the "Saxon Chronicle", in the latter part the year
invariably opens with Midwinterday or the Nativity. Gervase of Canterbury, whose Latin chronicle ends in
1199, the aera of "legal" memory, had formed a design, as he tells us, of regulating his chronology by the
Annunciation; but from an honest fear of falsifying dates he abandoned his first intention, and acquiesced in
the practice of his predecessors; who for the most part, he says, began the new year with the Nativity (35).
Having said thus much in illustration of the work itself, we must necessarily be brief in our account of the
present edition. It was contemplated many years since, amidst a constant succession of other occupations; but
nothing was then projected beyond a reprint of Gibson, substituting an English translation for the Latin. The
indulgence of the Saxon scholar is therefore requested, if we have in the early part of the chronicle too
faithfully followed the received text. By some readers no apology of this kind will be deemed necessary; but
something may be expected in extenuation of the delay which has retarded the publication. The causes of that
delay must be chiefly sought in the nature of the work itself. New types were to be cast; compositors to be
instructed in a department entirely new to them; manuscripts to be compared, collated, transcribed; the text to
be revised throughout; various readings of great intricacy to be carefully presented, with considerable
additions from unpublished sources; for, however unimportant some may at first sight appear, the most trivial
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 7
Page No 10
may be of use. With such and other difficulties before him, the editor has, nevertheless, been blessed with
health and leisure sufficient to overcome them; and he may now say with Gervase the monk at the end of his
first chronicle,
"Finito libro reddatur gratia Christo." (36)
Of the translation it is enough to observe, that it is made as literal as possible, with a view of rendering the
original easy to those who are at present unacquainted with the Saxon language. By this method also the
connection between the ancient and modern language will be more obvious. The same method has been
adopted in an unpublished translation of Gibson's "Chronicle" by the late Mr. Cough, now in the Bodleian
Library. But the honour of having printed the first literal version of the "Saxon Annals" was reserved for a
learned LADY, the Elstob of her age (37); whose Work was finished in the year 1819. These translations,
however, do not interfere with that in the present edition; because they contain nothing but what is found in
the printed texts, and are neither accompanied with the original, nor with any collation of MSS.
ENDNOTES:
(1) Whatever was the origin of this title, by which it is now
distinguished, in an appendix to the work itself it is
called "Liber de Wintonia," or "The WinchesterBook," from
its first place of custody.
(2) This title is retained, in compliance with custom, though it
is a collection of chronicles, rather than one uniform work,
as the received appellation seems to imply.
(3) In two volumes folio, with the following title: "Domesday
Book, seu Liber Censualis Willelmi Primi Regis Angliae,
inter Archlyos Regni in Domo Capitulari Westmonasterii
asservatus: jubente rege augustissimo Georgio Tertio praelo
mandatus typis MDCCLXXXIII"
(4) Gerard Langbaine had projected such a work, and had made
considerable progress in the collation of MSS., when he
found himself anticipated by Wheloc.
(5) "Nunc primum integrum edidit" is Gibson's expression in the
titlepage. He considers Wheloc's MSS. as fragments, rather
than entire chronicles: "quod integrum nacti jam discimus."
These MSS., however, were of the first authority, and not
less entire, as far as they went, than his own favourite
"Laud". But the candid critic will make allowance for the
zeal of a young Bachelor of Queen's, who, it must be
remembered, had scarcely attained the age of twentythree
when this extraordinary work was produced.
(6) The reader is forcibly reminded of the national dress of the
Highlanders in the following singular passage: "furciferos
magis vultus pilis, quam corporum pudenda, pudendisque
proxima, vestibus tegentes."
(7) See particularly capp. xxiii. and xxvi. The work which
follows, called the "Epistle of Gildas", is little more than
a cento of quotations from the Old and New Testament.
(8) "De historiis Scotorum Saxonumque, licet inimicorum," etc.
"Hist. Brit. ap." Gale, XV. Script. p. 93. See also p. 94
of the same work; where the writer notices the absence of
all written memorials among the Britons, and attributes it
to the frequent recurrence of war and pestilence. A new
edition has been prepared from a Vatican MS. with a
translation and notes by the Rev. W. Gunn, and published by
J. and A. Arch.
(9) "Malo me historiographum quam neminem," etc.
(10) He considered his work, perhaps, as a lamentation of
declamation, rather than a history. But Bede dignifies him
with the title of "historicus," though he writes "fiebili
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 8
Page No 11
sermone."
(11) But it is probable that the work is come down to us in a
garbled and imperfect state.
(12) There is an absurd story of a monk, who in vain attempting
to write his epitaph, fell asleep, leaving it thus: "Hac
sunt in fossa Bedae. ossa:" but, when he awoke, to his great
surprise and satisfaction he found the longsought epithet
supplied by an angelic hand, the whole line standing thus:
"Hac sunt in fossa Bedae venerabilis ossa."
(13) See the preface to his edition of the "Saxon Chronicle".
(14) This will be proved more fully when we come to speak of the
writers of the "Saxon Chronicle".
(15) Preface, "ubi supra".
(16) He died A.D. 734, according to our chronicle; but some place
his death to the following year.
(17) This circumstance alone proves the value of the "Saxon
Chronicle". In the "Edinburgh Chronicle" of St. Cross,
printed by H. Wharton, there is a chasm from the death of
Bede to the year 1065; a period of 330 years.
(18) The cold and reluctant manner in which he mentions the
"Saxon Annals", to which he was so much indebted, can only
be ascribed to this cause in him, as well as in the other
Latin historians. See his prologue to the first book, "De
Gestis Regum," etc.
(19) If there are additional anecdotes in the Chronicle of St.
Neot's, which is supposed to have been so called by Leland
because he found the MS. there, it must be remembered that
this work is considered an interpolated Asser.
(20) The death of Asser himself is recorded in the year 909; but
this is no more a proof that the whole work is spurious,
than the character and burial of Moses, described in the
latter part of the book of "Deuteronomy", would go to prove
that the Pentateuch was not written by him. See Bishop
Watson's "Apology for the Bible".
(21) Malmsbury calls him "noble and magnificent," with reference
to his rank; for he was descended from King Alfred: but he
forgets his peculiar praise that of being the only Latin
historian for two centuries; though, like Xenophon, Caesar,
and Alfred, he wielded the sword as much as the pen.
(22) This was no less a personage than Matilda, the daughter of
Otho the Great, Emperor of Germany, by his first Empress
Eadgitha or Editha; who is mentioned in the "Saxon
Chronicle", A.D. 925, though not by name, as given to Otho
by her brother, King Athelstan. Ethelwerd adds, in his
epistle to Matilda, that Athelstan sent two sisters, in
order that the emperor might take his choice; and that he
preferred the mother of Matilda.
(23) See particularly the character of William I. p. 294, written
by one who was in his court. The compiler of the "Waverley
Annals" we find literally translating it more than a century
afterwards: "nos dicemus, qui eum vidimus, et in curia
ejus aliquando fuimus," etc. Gale, ii. 134.
(24) His work, which is very faithfully and diligently compiled,
ends in the year 1117; but it is continued by another hand
to the imprisonment of King Stephen.
(25) "Chron. ap." Gale, ii. 21.
(26) "Virum Latina, Graec, et Saxonica lingua atque eruditione
multipliciter instructum." Bede, "Ecclesiastical
History", v. 8. "Chron. S. Crucis Edinb. ap.", Wharton, i.
157.
(27) The materials, however, though not regularly arranged, must
be traced to a much higher source.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823] 9
Page No 12
(28) Josselyn collated two Kentish MSS. of the first authority;
one of which he calls the History or Chronicle of St.
Augustine's, the other that of Christ Church, Canterbury.
The former was perhaps the one marked in our series "C.T."A
VI.; the latter the Benet or Plegmund MS.
(29) Wanley observes, that the Benet MS. is written in one and
the same hand to this year, and in hands equally ancient to
the year 924; after which it is continued in different hands
to the end. Vid. "Cat." p. 130.
(30) Florence of Worcester, in ascertaining the succession of the
kings of Wessex, refers expressly to the "Dicta Aelfredi".
Ethelwerd had before acknowledged that he reported many
things "sicut docuere parentes;" and then he immediately
adds, "Scilicet Aelfred rex Athulfi regis filius; ex quo nos
originem trahimus." Vid. Prol.
(31) Hickes supposed the Laud or Peterborough Chronicle to have
been compiled by Hugo Candidus (Albus, or White), or some
other monk of that house.
(32) See A.D. xxxiii., the aera of Christ's crucifixion, p. 23,
and the notes below.
(33) See Playfair's "System of Chronology", p. 49.
(34) Playfair says 527: but I follow Bede, Florence of Worcester,
and others, who affirm that the great paschal cycle of
Dionysius commenced from the year of our Lord's incarnation
532 the year in which the code of Justinian was
promulgated. "Vid. Flor. an." 532, 1064, and 1073. See
also M. West. "an." 532.
(35) "Vid. Prol. in Chron." Bervas. "ap. X." Script. p. 1338.
(36) Often did the editor, during the progress of the work,
sympathise with the printer; who, in answer to his urgent
importunities to hasten the work, replied once in the
classical language of Manutius: "Precor, ut occupationibus
meis ignoscas; premor enim oneribus, et typographiae cura,
ut vix sustineam." Who could be angry after this?
(37) Miss Gurney, of Keswick, Norfolk. The work, however, was
not published.
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE
Part I
The island Britain (1) is 800 miles long, and 200 miles broad. And there are in the island five nations;
English, Welsh (or British) (2), Scottish, Pictish, and Latin. The first inhabitants were the Britons, who came
from Armenia (3), and first peopled Britain southward. Then happened it, that the Picts came south from
Scythia, with long ships, not many; and, landing first in the northern part of Ireland, they told the Scots that
they must dwell there. But they would not give them leave; for the Scots told them that they could not all
dwell there together; "But," said the Scots, "we can nevertheless give you advice. We know another island
here to the east. There you may dwell, if you will; and whosoever withstandeth you, we will assist you, that
you may gain it." Then went the Picts and entered this land northward. Southward the Britons possessed it, as
we before said. And the Picts obtained wives of the Scots, on condition that they chose their kings always on
the female side (4); which they have continued to do, so long since. And it happened, in the run of years, that
some party of Scots went from Ireland into Britain, and acquired some portion of this land. Their leader was
called Reoda (5), from whom they are named Dalreodi (or Dalreathians).
Sixty winters ere that Christ was born, Caius Julius, emperor of the Romans, with eighty ships sought Britain.
There he was first beaten in a dreadful fight, and lost a great part of his army. Then he let his army abide with
the Scots (6), and went south into Gaul. There he gathered six hundred ships, with which he went back into
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 10
Page No 13
Britain. When they first rushed together, Caesar's tribune, whose name was Labienus (7), was slain. Then
took the Welsh sharp piles, and drove them with great clubs into the water, at a certain ford of the river called
Thames. When the Romans found that, they would not go over the ford. Then fled the Britons to the
fastnesses of the woods; and Caesar, having after much fighting gained many of the chief towns, went back
into Gaul (8).
((B.C. 60. Before the incarnation of Christ sixty years, Gaius Julius the emperor, first of the Romans, sought
the land of Britain; and he crushed the Britons in battle, and overcame them; and nevertheless he was unable
to gain any empire there.))
A.D. 1. Octavianus reigned fiftysix winters; and in the forty second year of his reign Christ was born. Then
three astrologers from the east came to worship Christ; and the children in Bethlehem were slain by Herod in
persecution of Christ.
A.D. 3. This year died Herod, stabbed by his own hand; and Archelaus his son succeeded him. The child
Christ was also this year brought back again from Egypt.
A.D. 6. From the beginning of the world to this year were agone five thousand and two hundred winters.
A.D. 11. This year Herod the son of Antipater undertook the government in Judea.
A.D. 12. This year Philip and Herod divided Judea into four kingdoms.
((A.D. 12. This year Judea was divided into four tetrarchies.))
A.D. 16. This year Tiberius succeeded to the empire.
A.D. 26. This year Pilate began to reign over the Jews.
A.D. 30. This year was Christ baptized; and Peter and Andrew were converted, together with James, and
John, and Philip, and all the twelve apostles.
A.D. 33. This year was Christ crucified; (9) about five thousand two hundred and twenty six winters from the
beginning of the world. (10)
A.D. 34. This year was St. Paul converted, and St. Stephen stoned.
A.D. 35. This year the blessed Peter the apostle settled an episcopal see in the city of Antioch.
A.D. 37. This year (11) Pilate slew himself with his own hand.
A.D. 39. This year Caius undertook the empire.
A.D. 44. This year the blessed Peter the apostle settled an episcopal see at Rome; and James, the brother of
John, was slain by Herod.
A.D. 45. This year died Herod, who slew James one year ere his own death.
A.D. 46. This year Claudius, the second of the Roman emperors who invaded Britain, took the greater part of
the island into his power, and added the Orkneys to rite dominion of the Romans. This was in the fourth year
of his reign. And in the same year (12) happened the great famine in Syria which Luke mentions in the book
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 11
Page No 14
called "The Acts of the Apostles". After Claudius Nero succeeded to the empire, who almost lost the island
Britain through his incapacity.
((A.D. 46. This year the Emperor Claudius came to Britain, and subdued a large part of the island; and he
also added the island of Orkney to the dominion of the Romans.))
A.D. 47. This year Mark, the evangelist in Egypt beginneth to write the gospel.
((A.D. 47. This was in the fourth year of his reign, and in this same year was the great famine in Syria which
Luke speaks of in the book called "Actus Apostolorum".))
((A.D. 47. This year Claudius, king of the Romans, went with an army into Britain, and subdued the island,
and subjected all the Picts and Welsh to the rule of the Romans.))
A.D. 50. This year Paul was sent bound to Rome.
A.D. 62. This year James, the brother of Christ, suffered.
A.D. 63. This year Mark the evangelist departed this life.
A.D. 69. This year Peter and Paul suffered.
A.D. 70. This year Vespasian undertook the empire.
A.D. 71. This year Titus, son of Vespasian, slew in Jerusalem eleven hundred thousand Jews.
A.D. 81. This year Titus came to the empire, after Vespasian, who said that he considered the day lost in
which he did no good.
A.D. 83. This year Domitian, the brother of Titus, assumed the government.
A.D. 84. This year John the evangelist in the island Patmos wrote the book called "The Apocalypse".
A.D. 90. This year Simon, the apostle, a relation of Christ, was crucified: and John the evangelist rested at
Ephesus.
A.D. 92. This year died Pope Clement.
A.D. 110. This year Bishop Ignatius suffered.
A.D. 116. This year Hadrian the Caesar began to reign.
A.D. 145. This year Marcus Antoninus and Aurelius his brother succeeded to the empire.
((A.D. 167. This year Eleutherius succeeded to the popedom, and held it fifteen years; and in the same year
Lucius, king of the Britons, sent and begged baptism of him. And he soon sent it him, and they continued in
the true faith until the time of Diocletian.))
A.D. 189. This year Severus came to the empire; and went with his army into Britain, and subdued in battle a
great part of the island. Then wrought he a mound of turf, with a broad wall thereupon, from sea to sea, for
the defence of the Britons. He reigned seventeen years; and then ended his days at York. His son Bassianus
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 12
Page No 15
succeeded him in the empire. His other son, who perished, was called Geta. This year Eleutherius undertook
the bishopric of Rome, and held it honourably for fifteen winters. To him Lucius, king of the Britons, sent
letters, and prayed that he might be made a Christian. He obtained his request; and they continued afterwards
in the right belief until the reign of Diocletian.
A.D. 199. In this year was found the holy rood. (13)
A.D. 283. This year suffered Saint Alban the Martyr.
A.D. 343. This year died St. Nicolaus.
A.D. 379. This year Gratian succeeded to the empire.
A.D. 381. This year Maximus the Caesar came to the empire. He was born in the land of Britain, whence he
passed over into Gaul. He there slew the Emperor Gratian; and drove his brother, whose name was
Valentinian, from his country (Italy). The same Valentinian afterwards collected an army, and slew Maximus;
whereby he gained the empire. About this time arose the error of Pelagius over the world.
A.D. 418. This year the Romans collected all the hoards of gold (14) that were in Britain; and some they hid
in the earth, so that no man afterwards might find them, and some they carried away with them into Gaul.
A.D. 423. This year Theodosius the younger succeeded to the empire.
A.D. 429. This year Bishop Palladius was sent from Pope Celesrinus to the Scots, that he might establish
their faith.
A.D. 430. This year Patricius was sent from Pope Celestinus to preach baptism to the Scots.
((A.D. 430. This year Patrick was sent by Pope Celestine to preach baptism to the Scots.))
A.D. 435. This year the Goths sacked the city of Rome; and never since have the Romans reigned in Britain.
This was about eleven hundred and ten winters after it was built. They reigned altogether in Britain four
hundred and seventy winters since Gaius Julius first sought that land.
A.D. 443. This year sent the Britons over sea to Rome, and begged assistance against the Picts; but they had
none, for the Romans were at war with Atila, king of the Huns. Then sent they to the Angles, and requested
the same from the nobles of that nation.
A.D. 444. This year died St. Martin.
A.D. 448. This year John the Baptist showed his head to two monks, who came from the eastern country to
Jerusalem for the sake of prayer, in the place that whilom was the palace of Herod. (15)
A.D. 449. This year Marcian and Valentinian assumed the empire, and reigned seven winters. In their days
Hengest and Horsa, invited by Wurtgern, king of the Britons to his assistance, landed in Britain in a place that
is called Ipwinesfleet; first of all to support the Britons, but they afterwards fought against them. The king
directed them to fight against the Picts; and they did so; and obtained the victory wheresoever they came.
They then sent to the Angles, and desired them to send more assistance. They described the worthlessness of
the Britons, and the richness of the land. They then sent them greater support. Then came the men from three
powers of Germany; the Old Saxons, the Angles, and the Jutes. From the Jutes are descended the men of
Kent, the Wightwarians (that is, the tribe that now dwelleth in the Isle of Wight), and that kindred in Wessex
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 13
Page No 16
that men yet call the kindred of the Jutes. From the Old Saxons came the people of Essex and Sussex and
Wessex. From Anglia, which has ever since remained waste between the Jutes and the Saxons, came the East
Angles, the Middle Angles, the Mercians, and all of those north of the Humber. Their leaders were two
brothers, Hengest and Horsa; who were the sons of Wihtgils; Wihtgils was the son of Witta, Witta of Wecta,
Wecta of Woden. From this Woden arose all our royal kindred, and that of the Southumbrians also.
((A.D. 449. And in their days Vortigern invited the Angles thither, and they came to Britain in three ceols, at
the place called Wippidsfleet.))
A.D. 455. This year Hengest and Horsa fought with Wurtgern the king on the spot that is called Aylesford.
His brother Horsa being there slain, Hengest afterwards took to the kingdom with his son Esc.
A.D. 457. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Crayford, and there
slew four thousand men. The Britons then forsook the land of Kent, and in great consternation fled to
London.
A.D. 465. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Welsh, nigh Wippedfleet; and there slew twelve
leaders, all Welsh. On their side a thane was there slain, whose name was Wipped.
A.D. 473. This year Hengest and Esc fought with the Welsh, and took immense Booty. And the Welsh fled
from the English like fire.
A.D. 477. This year came Ella to Britain, with his three sons, Cymen, and Wlenking, and Cissa, in three
ships; landing at a place that is called Cymenshore. There they slew many of the Welsh; and some in flight
they drove into the wood that is called Andred'sley.
A.D. 482. This year the blessed Abbot Benedict shone in this world, by the splendour of those virtues which
the blessed Gregory records in the book of Dialogues.
A.D. 485. This year Ella fought with the Welsh nigh Mecred's Burnsted.
A.D. 488. This year Esc succeeded to the kingdom; and was king of the men of Kent twentyfour winters.
A.D. 490. This year Ella and Cissa besieged the city of Andred, and slew all that were therein; nor was one
Briten left there afterwards.
A.D. 495. This year came two leaders into Britain, Cerdic and Cynric his son, with five ships, at a place that
is called Cerdic'sore. And they fought with the Welsh the same day. Then he died, and his son Cynric
succeeded to the government, and held it six and twenty winters. Then he died; and Ceawlin, his son,
succeeded, who reigned seventeen years. Then he died; and Ceol succeeded to the government, and reigned
five years. When he died, Ceolwulf, his brother, succeeded, and reigned seventeen years. Their kin goeth to
Cerdic. Then succeeded Cynebils, Ceolwulf's brother's son, to the kingdom; and reigned one and thirty
winters. And he first of WestSaxon kings received baptism. Then succeeded Cenwall, who was the son of
Cynegils, and reigned one and thirty winters. Then held Sexburga, his queen, the government one year after
him. Then succeeded Escwine to the kingdom, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and held it two years. Then
succeeded Centwine, the son of Cynegils, to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, and reigned nine years. Then
succeeded Ceadwall to the government, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and held it three years. Then succeeded
Ina to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned thirtyseven winters. Then
succeeded Ethelheard, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen years. Then succeeded Cuthred, whose
kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen winters. Then succeeded Sigebriht, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and
reigned one year. Then succeeded Cynwulf, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned one and thirty winters.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 14
Page No 17
Then succeeded Brihtric, whose kin goeth to Cerdic, and reigned sixteen years. Then succeeded Egbert to the
kingdom, and held it seven and thirty winters, and seven months. Then succeeded Ethelwulf, his son, and
reigned eighteen years and a half. Ethelwulf was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Ealmund, Ealmund of Eafa,
Eafa of Eoppa, Eoppa of Ingild, Ingild of Cenred (Ina of Cenred, Cuthburga of Cenred, and Cwenburga of
Cenred), Cenred of Ceolwald, Ceolwald of Cuthwulf, Cuthwulf of Cuthwine, Cuthwine of Celm, Celm of
Cynric, Cynric of Creoda, Creoda of Cerdic. Then succeeded Ethelbald, the son of Ethelwulf, to the kingdom,
and held it five years. Then succeeded Ethelbert, his brother, and reigned five years. Then succeeded
Ethelred, his brother, to the kingdom, and held it five years. Then succeeded Alfred, their brother, to the
government. And then had elapsed of his age three and twenty winters, and three hundred and ninetysix
winters from the time when his kindred first gained the land of Wessex from the Welsh. And he held the
kingdom a year and a half less than thirty winters. Then succeeded Edward, the son of Alfred, and reigned
twentyfour winters. When he died, then succeeded Athelstan, his son, and reigned fourteen years and seven
weeks and three days. Then succeeded Edmund, his brother, and reigned six years and a half, wanting two
nights. Then succeeded Edred, his brother, and reigned nine years and six weeks. Then succeeded Edwy, the
son of Edmund, and reigned three years and thirtysix weeks, wanting two days. When he died, then
succeeded Edgar, his brother, and reigned sixteen years and eight weeks and two nights. When he died, then
succeeded Edward, the son of Edgar, and reigned
A.D. 501. This year Porta and his two sons, Beda and Mela, came into Britain, with two ships, at a place
called Portsmouth. They soon landed, and slew on the spot a young Briton of very high rank.
A.D. 508. This year Cerdic and Cynric slew a British king, whose name was Natanleod, and five thousand
men with him. After this was the land named Netley, from him, as far as Charford.
A.D. 509. This year St. Benedict, the abbot, father of all the monks, (16) ascended to heaven.
A.D. 514. This year came the WestSaxons into Britain, with three ships, at the place that is called
Cerdic'sore. And Stuff and Wihtgar fought with the Britons, and put them to flight.
A.D. 519. This year Cerdic and Cynric undertook the government of the WestSaxons; the same year they
fought with the Britons at a place now called Charford. From that day have reigned the children of the
WestSaxon kings.
A.D. 527. This year Cerdic and Cynric fought with the Britons in the place that is called Cerdic'sley.
A.D. 530. This year Cerdic and Cynric took the isle of Wight, and slew many men in Carisbrook.
A.D. 534. This year died Cerdic, the first king of the West Saxons. Cynric his son succeeded to the
government, and reigned afterwards twentysix winters. And they gave to their two nephews, Stuff and
Wihtgar, the whole of the Isle of Wight.
A.D. 538. This year the sun was eclipsed, fourteen days before the calends of March, from before morning
until nine.
A.D. 540. This year the sun was eclipsed on the twelfth day before the calends of July; and the stars showed
themselves full nigh half an hour over nine.
A.D. 544. This year died Wihtgar; and men buried him at Carisbrook.
A.D. 547. This year Ida began his reign; from whom first arose the royal kindred of the Northumbrians. Ida
was the son of Eoppa, Eoppa of Esa, Esa of Ingwy, Ingwy of Angenwit, Angenwit of Alloc, Alloc of Bennoc,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 15
Page No 18
Bennoc of Brand, Brand of Balday, Balday of Woden. Woden of Fritholaf, Fritholaf of Frithowulf,
Frithowulf of Finn, Finn of Godolph, Godolph of Geata. Ida reigned twelve years. He built
BamburghCastle, which was first surrounded with a hedge, and afterwards with a wall.
A.D. 552. This year Cynric fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Sarum, and put them to flight.
Cerdic was the father of Cynric, Cerdic was the son of Elesa, Elesa of Esla, Esla of Gewis, Gewis of Wye,
Wye of Frewin, Frewin of Frithgar, Frithgar of Brand, Brand of Balday, Balday of Woden. In this year
Ethelbert, the son of Ermenric, was born, who on the two and thirtieth year of his reign received the rite of
baptism, the first of all the kings in Britain.
A.D. 556. This year Cynric and Ceawlin fought with the Britons at Beranbury.
A.D. 560. This year Ceawlin undertook the government of the WestSaxons; and Ella, on the death of Ida,
that of the Northumbrians; each of whom reigned thirty winters. Ella was the son of Iff, Iff of Usfrey, Usfrey
of Wilgis, Wilgis of Westerfalcon, Westerfalcon of Seafowl, Seafowl of Sebbald, Sebbald of Sigeat, Sigeat of
Swaddy, Swaddy of Seagirt, Seagar of Waddy, Waddy of Woden, Woden of Frithowulf. This year Ethelbert
came to the kingdom of the Cantuarians, and held it fiftythree winters. In his days the holy Pope Gregory
sent us baptism. That was in the two and thirtieth year of his reign. And Columba, the masspriest, came to
the Picts, and converted them to the belief of Christ. They are the dwellers by the northern moors. And their
king gave him the island of Hii, consisting of five hides, as they say, where Columba built a monastary.
There he was abbot two and thirty winters; and there he died, when he was seventyseven years old. The
place his successors yet have. The Southern Picts were long before baptized by Bishop Ninnia, who was
taught at Rome. His church or monastery is at Hwiterne, hallowed in the name of St. Martin, where he resteth
with many holy men. Now, therefore, shall there be ever in Hii an abbot, and no bishop; and to him shall be
subject all the bishops of the Scots; because Columba was an abbot no bishop.
((A.D. 565. This year Columba the presbyter came from the Scots among the Britons, to instruct the Picts,
and he built a monastery in the island of Hii.))
A.D. 568. This year Ceawlin, and Cutha the brother of Ceawlin, fought with Ethelbert, and pursued him into
Kent. And they slew two aldermen at Wimbledon, Oslake and Cnebba.
A.D. 571. This year Cuthulf fought with the Britons at Bedford, and took four towns, Lenbury, Aylesbury,
Benson, and Ensham. And this same year he died.
A.D. 577. This year Cuthwin and Ceawlin fought with the Britons, and slew three kings, Commail, and
Condida, and Farinmail, on the spot that is called Derham, and took from them three cities, Gloucester,
Cirencester, and Bath.
A.D. 583. This year Mauricius succeeded to the empire of the Romans.
A.D. 584. This year Ceawlin and Cutha fought with the Britons on the spot that is called Fretherne. There
Cutha was slain. And Ceawlin took many towns, as well as immense booty and wealth. He then retreated to
his own people.
A.D. 588. This year died King Ella; and Ethelric reigned after him five years.
A.D. 591. This year there was a great slaughter of Britons at Wanborough; Ceawlin was driven from his
kingdom, and Ceolric reigned six years.
A.D. 592. This year Gregory succeeded to the papacy at Rome.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 16
Page No 19
A.D. 593. This year died Ceawlin, and Cwichelm, and Cryda; and Ethelfrith succeeded to the kingdom of the
Northumbrians. He was the son of Ethelric; Ethelric of Ida.
A.D. 596. This year Pope Gregory sent Augustine to Britain with very many monks, to preach the word of
God to the English people.
A.D. 597. This year began Ceolwulf to reign over the West Saxons; and he constantly fought and
conquered, either with the Angles, or the Welsh, or the Picts, or the Scots. He was the son of Cutha, Cutha of
Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic, Cerdic of Elesa, Elesa of Gewis, Gewis of Wye, Wye of Frewin, Frewin of
Frithgar, Frithgar of Brand, Brand of Balday, and Balday of Woden. This year came Augustine and his
companions to England. (17)
A.D. 601. This year Pope Gregory sent the pall to Archbishop Augustine in Britain, with very many learned
doctors to assist him; and Bishop Paulinus converted Edwin, king of the Northumbrians, to baptism.
A.D. 603. This year Aeden, king of the Scots, fought with the Dalreathians, and with Ethelfrith, king of the
Northumbrians, at Theakstone; where he lost almost all his army. Theobald also, brother of Ethelfrith, with
his whole armament, was slain. None of the Scottish kings durst afterwards bring an army against this nation.
Hering, the son of Hussa, led the army thither.
((A.D. 603. This year Aethan, King of the Scots, fought against the Dalreods and against Ethelfrith, king of
the Northhumbrians, at Daegsanstane [Dawston?], and they slew almost all his army. There Theodbald,
Ethelfrith's brother, was slain with all his band. Since then no king of the Scots has dared to lead an army
against this nation. Hering, the son of Hussa, led the enemy thither.))
A.D. 604. This year Augustine consecrated two bishops, Mellitus and Justus. Mellitus he sent to preach
baptism to the East Saxons. Their king was called Seabert, the son of Ricola, Ethelbert's sister, whom
Ethelbert placed there as king. Ethelbert also gave Mellitus the bishopric of London; and to Justus he gave the
bishopric of Rochester, which is twentyfour miles from Canterbury.
((A.D. 604. This year Augustine consecrated two bishops, Mellitus and Justus. He sent Mellitus to preach
baptism to the EastSaxons, whose king was called Sebert, son of Ricole, the sister of Ethelbert, and whom
Ethelbert had there appointed king. And Ethelbert gave Mellitus a bishop's see in London, and to Justus he
gave Rochester, which is twentyfour miles from Canterbury.))
A.D. 606. This year died Gregory; about ten years since he sent us baptism. His father was called Gordianus,
and his mother Silvia.
A.D. 607. This year Ceolwulf fought with the SouthSaxons. And Ethelfrith led his army to Chester; where
he slew an innumerable host of the Welsh; and so was fulfilled the prophecy of Augustine, wherein he saith
"If the Welsh will not have peace with us, they shall perish at the hands of the Saxons." There were also slain
two hundred priests, (18) who came thither to pray for the army of the Welsh. Their leader was called
Brocmail, who with some fifty men escaped thence.
A.D. 611. This year Cynegils succeeded to the government in Wessex, and held it one and thirty winters.
Cynegils was the son of Ceol, Ceol of Cutha, Cutha of Cynric.
A.D. 614. This year Cynegils and Cwichelm fought at Bampton, and slew two thousand and fortysix of the
Welsh.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 17
Page No 20
A.D. 616. This year died Ethelbert, king of Kent, the first of English kings that received baptism: he was the
son of Ermenric. He reigned fiftysix winters, and was succeeded by his son Eadbald. And in this same year
had elapsed from the beginning of the world five thousand six hundred and eighteen winters. This Eadbald
renounced his baptism, and lived in a heathen manner; so that he took to wife the relict of his father. Then
Laurentius, who was archbishop in Kent, meant to depart southward over sea, and abandon everything. But
there came to him in the night the apostle Peter, and severely chastised him, (19) because he would so desert
the flock of God. And he charged him to go to the king, and teach him the right belief. And he did so; and the
king returned to the right belief. In this king's days the same Laurentius, who was archbishop in Kent after
Augustine, departed this life on the second of February, and was buried near Augustine. The holy Augustine
in his lifetime invested him bishop, to the end that the church of Christ, which yet was new in England,
should at no time after his decease be without an archbishop. After him Mellitus, who was first Bishop of
London, succeeded to the archbishopric. The people of London, where Mellitus was before, were then
heathens: and within five winters of this time, during the reign of Eadbald, Mellitus died. To him succeeded
Justus, who was Bishop of Rochester, whereto he consecrated Romanus bishop.
((A.D. 616. In that time Laurentius was archbishop, and for the sorrowfulness which he had on account of the
king's unbelief he was minded to forsake this country entirely, and go over sea; but St. Peter the apostle
scourged him sorely one night, because he wished thus to forsake the flock of God, and commanded him to
teach boldly the true faith to the king; and he did so, and the king turned to the right (faith). In the days of this
same king, Eadbald, this Laurentius died. The holy Augustine, while yet in sound health, ordained him
bishop, in order that the community of Christ, which was yet new in England, should not after his decease be
at any time without an archbishop. After him Mellitus, who had been previously Bishop of London,
succeeded to the archbishopric. And within five years of the decease of Laurentius, while Eadbald still
reigned, Mellitus departed to Christ.))
A.D. 617. This year was Ethelfrith, king of the Northumbrians, slain by Redwald, king of the EastAngles;
and Edwin, the son of Ella, having succeeded to the kingdom, subdued all Britain, except the men of Kent
alone, and drove out the Ethelings, the sons of Ethelfrith, namely, Enfrid. Oswald, Oswy, Oslac, Oswood.
Oslaf, and Offa.
A.D. 624. This year died Archbishop Mellitus.
A.D. 625. This year Paulinus was invested bishop of the Northumbrians, by Archbishop Justus, on the twelfth
day before the calends of August.
((A.D. 625. This year Archbishop Justus consecrated Paulinus bishop of the Northhumbrians.))
A.D. 626. This year came Eamer from Cwichelm, king of the West Saxons, with a design to assassinate
King Edwin; but he killed Lilla his thane, and Forthere, and wounded the king. The same night a daughter
was born to Edwin, whose name was Eanfleda. Then promised the king to Paulinus, that he would devote his
daughter to God, if he would procure at the hand of God, that he might destroy his enemy, who had sent the
assassin to him. He then advanced against the WestSaxons with an army, felled on the spot five kings, and
slew many of their men. This year Eanfleda, the daughter of King Edwin, was baptized, on the holy eve of
Pentecost. And the king within twelve months was baptized, at Easter, with all his people. Easter was then on
the twelfth of April. This was done at York, where he had ordered a church to be built of timber, which was
hallowed in the name of St. Peter. There the king gave the bishopric to Paulinus; and there he afterwards
ordered a larger church to be built of stone. This year Penda began to reign; and reigned thirty winters. He
had seen fifty winters when he began to reign. Penda was the son of Wybba, Wybba of Creoda, Creoda of
Cynewald, Cynewald of Cnebba, Cnebba of Icel, Icel of Eomer, Eomer of Angelthew, Angelthew of Offa,
Offa of Wearmund, Wearmund of Whitley, Whitley of Woden.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 18
Page No 21
A.D. 627. This year was King Edwin baptized at Easter, with all his people, by Paulinus, who also preached
baptism in Lindsey, where the first person who believed was a certain rich man, of the name of Bleek, with
all his people. At this time Honorius succeeded Boniface in the papacy, and sent hither to Paulinus the pall;
and Archbishop Justus having departed this life on the tenth of November, Honorius was consecrated at
Lincoln Archbishop of Canterbury by Paulinus; and Pope Honorius sent him the pall. And he sent an
injunction to the Scots, that they should return to the right celebration of Easter.
((A.D. 627. This year, at Easter, Paulinus baptized Edwin king of the Northhumbrians, with his people; and
earlier within the same year, at Pentecost, he had baptized Eanfled, daughter of the same king.))
A.D. 628. This year Cynegils and Cwichelm fought with Penda at Cirencester, and afterwards entered into a
treaty there.
A.D. 632. This year was Orpwald baptized.
A.D. 633. This year King Edwin was slain by Cadwalla and Penda, on Hatfield moor, on the fourteenth of
October. He reigned seventeen years. His son Osfrid was also slain with him. After this Cadwalla and Penda
went and ravaged all the land of the Northumbrians; which when Paulinus saw, he took Ethelburga, the relict
of Edwin, and went by ship to Kent. Eadbald and Honorius received him very honourably, and gave him the
bishopric of Rochester, where he continued to his death.
A.D. 634. This year Osric, whom Paulinus baptized, succeeded to the government of Deira. He was the son
of Elfric, the uncle of Edwin. And to Bernicia succeeded Eanfrith, son of Ethelfrith. This year also Bishop
Birinus first preached baptism to the West Saxons, under King Cynegils. The said Birinus went thither by
the command of Pope Honorius; and he was bishop there to the end of his life. Oswald also this year
succeeded to the government of the Northumbrians, and reigned nine winters. The ninth year was assigned to
him on account of the heathenism in which those lived who reigned that one year betwixt him and Edwin.
A.D. 635. This year King Cynegils was baptized by Bishop Birinus at Dorchester; and Oswald, king of the
Northumbrians, was his sponsor.
A.D. 636. This year King Cwichelm was baptized at Dorchester, and died the same year. Bishop Felix also
preached to the East Angles the belief of Christ.
A.D. 639. This year Birinus baptized King Cuthred at Dorchester, and received him as his son.
A.D. 640. This year died Eadbald, King of Kent, after a reign of twentyfive winters. He had two sons,
Ermenred and Erkenbert; and Erkenbert reigned there after his father. He overturned all the idols in the
kingdom, and first of English kings appointed a fast before Easter. His daughter was called Ercongota
holy damsel of an illustrious sire! whose mother was Sexburga, the daughter of Anna, king of the
EastAngles. Ermenred also begat two sons, who were afterwards martyred by Thunnor.
A.D. 642. This year Oswald, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by Penda, king of the Southumbrians, at
Mirfield, on the fifth day of August; and his body was buried at Bardney. His holiness and miracles were
afterwards displayed on manifold occasions throughout this island; and his hands remain still uncorrupted at
Barnburgh. The same year in which Oswald was slain, Oswy his brother succeeded to the government of the
Northumbrians, and reigned two less than thirty years.
A.D. 643. This year Kenwal succeeded to the kingdom of the West Saxons, and held it one and thirty
winters. This Kenwal ordered the old (20) church at Winchester to be built in the name of St. Peter. He was
the son of Cynegils.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 19
Page No 22
A.D. 644. This year died at Rochester, on the tenth of October, Paulinus, who was first Archbishop at York,
and afterwards at Rochester. He was bishop nineteen winters, two months, and one and twenty days. This
year the son of Oswy's uncle (Oswin), the son of Osric, assumed the government of Deira, and reigned seven
winters.
A.D. 645. This year King Kenwal was driven from his dominion by King Penda.
A.D. 646. This year King Kenwal was baptized.
A.D. 648. This year Kenwal gave his relation Cuthred three thousand hides of land by Ashdown. Cuthred was
the son of Cwichelm, Cwichelm of Cynegils.
A.D. 650. This year Egelbert, from Gaul, after Birinus the Romish bishop, obtained the bishopric of the
WestSaxons.
((A.D. 650. This year Birinus the bishop died, and Agilbert the Frenchman was ordained.))
A.D. 651. This year King Oswin was slain, on the twentieth day of August; and within twelve nights
afterwards died Bishop Aidan, on the thirtyfirst of August.
A.D. 652. This year Kenwal fought at Bradford by the Avon.
A.D. 653. This year, the MiddleAngles under alderman Peada received the right belief.
A.D. 654. This year King Anna was slain, and Botolph began to build that minster at Icanhoe. This year also
died Archbishop Honorius, on the thirtieth of September.
A.D. 655. This year Penda was slain at Wingfield, and thirty royal personages with him, some of whom were
kings. One of them was Ethelhere, brother of Anna, king of the EastAngles. The Mercians after this became
Christians. From the beginning of the world had now elapsed five thousand eight hundred and fifty winters,
when Peada, the son of Penda, assumed the government of the Mercians. In his time came together himself
and Oswy, brother of King Oswald, and said, that they would rear a minster to the glory of Christ, and the
honour of St. Peter. And they did so, and gave it the name of Medhamsted; because there is a well there,
called Meadswell. And they began the groundwall, and wrought thereon; after which they committed the
work to a monk, whose name was Saxulf. He was very much the friend of God, and him also loved all
people. He was nobly born in the world, and rich: he is now much richer with Christ. But King Peada reigned
no while; for he was betrayed by his own queen, in Eastertide. This year Ithamar, Bishop of Rochester,
consecrated Deusdedit to Canterbury, on the twentysixth day of March.
A.D. 656. This year was Peada slain; and Wulfhere, son of Penda, succeeded to the kingdom of the Mercians.
In his time waxed the abbey of Medhamsted very rich, which his brother had begun. The king loved it much,
for the love of his brother Peada, and for the love of his wedbrother Oswy, and for the love of Saxulf the
abbot. He said, therefore, that he would dignify and honour it by the counsel of his brothers, Ethelred and
Merwal; and by the counsel of his sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha; and by the counsel of the archbishop,
who was called Deusdedit; and by the counsel of all his peers, learned and lewd, that in his kingdom were.
And he so did. Then sent the king after the abbot, that he should immediately come to him. And he so did.
Then said the king to the abbot: "Beloved Saxulf, I have sent after thee for the good of my soul; and I will
plainly tell thee for why. My brother Peada and my beloved friend Oswy began a minster, for the love of
Christ and St. Peter: but my brother, as Christ willed, is departed from this life; I will therefore intreat thee,
beloved friend, that they earnestly proceed on their work; and I will find thee thereto gold and silver, land and
possessions, and all that thereto behoveth." Then went the abbot home, and began to work. So he sped, as
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 20
Page No 23
Christ permitted him; so that in a few years was that minster ready. Then, when the king heard say that, he
was very glad; and bade men send through all the nation, after all his thanes; after the archbishop, and after
bishops: and after his earls; and after all those that loved God; that they should come to him. And he fixed the
day when men should hallow the minster. And when they were hallowing the minster, there was the king,
Wulfere, and his brother Ethelred, and his sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha. And the minster was hallowed
by Archbishop Deusdedit of Canterbury; and the Bishop of Rochester, Ithamar; and the Bishop of London,
who was called Wina; and the Bishop of the Mercians, whose name was Jeruman; and Bishop Tuda. And
there was Wilfrid, priest, that after was bishop; and there were all his thanes that were in his kingdom. When
the minster was hallowed, in the name of St. Peter, and St. Paul, and St. Andrew, then stood up the king
before all his thanes, and said with a loud voice: "Thanks be to the high almighty God for this worship that
here is done; and I will this day glorify Christ and St. Peter, and I will that you all confirm my words. I
Wulfere give today to St. Peter, and the Abbot Saxulf, and the monks of the minster, these lands, and these
waters, and meres, and fens, and weirs, and all the lands that thereabout lye, that are of my kingdom, freely,
so that no man have there any ingress, but the abbot and the monks. This is the gift. From Medhamsted to
Northborough; and so to the place that is called Foleys; and so all the fen, right to Ashdike; and from Ashdike
to the place called Fethermouth; and so in a right line ten miles long to Ugdike; and so to Ragwell; and from
Ragwell five miles to the main river that goeth to Elm and to Wisbeach; and so about three miles to
Trokenholt; and from Trokenholt right through all the fen to Derworth; that is twenty miles long; and so to
Great Cross; and from Great Cross through a clear water called Bradney; and thence six miles to Paxlade; and
so forth through all the meres and fens that lye toward Huntingdonport; and the meres and lakes
Shelfermere and Wittlesey mere, and all the others that thereabout lye; with land and with houses that are on
the east side of Shelfermere; thence all the fens to Medhamsted; from Medhamsted all to Welmsford; from
Welmsford to Clive; thence to Easton; from Easton to Stamford; from Stamford as the water runneth to the
aforesaid Northborough." These are the lands and the fens that the king gave unto St. Peter's minster.
Then quoth the king: "It is little this gift but I will that they hold it so royally and so freely, that there
be taken there from neither gild nor gable, but for the monks alone. Thus I will free this minster; that it be not
subject except to Rome alone; and hither I will that we seek St. Peter, all that to Rome cannot go." During
these words the abbot desired that he would gant him his request. And the king granted it. "I have here (said
he) some good monks that would lead their life in retirement, if they wist where. Now here is an island, that
is called Ankerig; and I will request, that we may there build a minster to the honour of St. Mary; that they
may dwell there who will lead their lives in peace and tranquillity." Then answered the king, and quoth thus:
"Beloved Saxulf, not that only which thou desirest, but all things that I know thou desirest in our Lord's
behalf, so I approve, and grant. And I bid thee, brother Ethelred, and my sisters, Kyneburga and Kyneswitha,
for the release of your souls, that you be witnesses, and that you subscribe it with your fingers. And I pray all
that come after me, be they my sons, be they my brethren, or kings that come after me, that our gift may
stand; as they would be partakers of the life everlasting, and as they would avoid everlasting punishment.
Whoso lesseneth our gift, or the gift of other good men, may the heavenly porter lessen him in the kingdom
of heaven; and whoso advanceth it, may the heavenly porter advance him in the kingdom of heaven." These
are the witnesses that were there, and that subscribed it with their fingers on the cross of Christ, and
confirmed it with their tongues. That was, first the king, Wulfere, who confirmed it first with his word, and
afterwards wrote with his finger on the cross of Christ, saying thus: "I Wulfere, king, in the presence of kings,
and of earls, and of captains, and of thanes, the witnesses of my gift, before the Archbishop Deusdedit, I
confirm it with the cross of Christ." (+) "And I Oswy, king of the Northumbrians, the friend of this
minster, and oœ the Abbot Saxulf, commend it with the cross of Christ." (+) "And I Sighere, king, ratify it
with the cross of Christ." (+) "And I Sibbi, king, subscribe it with the cross of Christ." (+) "And I
Ethelred, the king's brother, granted the same with the cross of Christ." (+) "And we, the king's sisters,
Kyneburga and Kyneswitha, approve it." "And I Archbishop of Canterbury, Deusdedit, ratify it."
Then confirmed it all the others that were there with the cross of Christ (+): namely, Ithamar, Bishop of
Rochester; Wina, Bishop of London; Jeruman, Bishop of the Mercians; and Tuda, bishop; and Wilfrid, priest,
who was afterwards bishop; and Eoppa, priest, whom the king, Wulfere, sent to preach christianity in the Isle
of Wight; and Saxulf, abbot; and Immine, alderman, and Edbert, alderman, and Herefrith, alderman, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 21
Page No 24
Wilbert, alderman, and Abo, alderman; Ethelbald, Brord, Wilbert, Elmund, Frethegis. These, and many
others that were there, the king's most loyal subjects, confirmed it all. This charter was written after our
Lord's Nativity 664 the seventh year of King Wulfere the ninth year of Archbishop Deusdedir. Then
they laid God's curse, and the curse of all saints, and all christian folks, on whosoever undid anything that
there was done. "So be it," saith all. "Amen." When this thing was done, then sent the king to Rome to the
Pope Vitalianus that then was, and desired, that he would ratify with his writ and with his blessing, all this
aforesaid thing. And the pope then sent his writ, thus saying: "I Vitalianus, pope, grant thee, King Wulfere,
and Deusdedit, archbishop, and Abbot Saxulf, all the things that you desire. And I forbid, that any king, or
any man, have any ingress, but the abbot alone; nor shall he be Subject to any man, except the Pope of Rome
and the Archbishop of Canterbury. If any one breaketh anything of this, St. Peter with his sword destroy him.
Whosoever holdeth it, St. Peter with heaven's key undo him the kingdom of heaven." Thus was the
minster of Medhamsted begun, that was afterwards called Peterborough. Afterwards came another
archbishop to Canterbury, who was called Theodorus; a very good man and wise; and held his synod with his
bishops and with his clerk. There was Wilfrid, bishop of the Mercians, deprived of his bishopric; and Saxulf,
abbot, was there chosen bishop; and Cuthbald, monk of the same minster, was chosen abbot. This synod was
holden after our Lord's Nativity six hundred and seventythree winters.
A.D. 658. This year Kenwal fought with the Welsh at Pen, and pursued them to the Parret. This battle was
fought after his return from EastAnglia, where he was three years in exile. Penda had driven him thither and
deprived him of his kingdom, because he had discarded his sister.
A.D. 660. This year Bishop Egelbert departed from Kenwal; and Wina held the bishopric three years. And
Egbert accepted the bishopric of Paris, in Gaul, by the Seine.
A.D. 661. This year, at Easter, Kenwal fought at Pontesbury; and Wulfere, the son of Penda, pursued him as
far as Ashdown. Cuthred, the son of Cwichelm, and King Kenbert, died in one year. Into the Isle of Wight
also Wulfere, the son of Penda, penetrated, and transferred the inhabitants to Ethelwald, king of the
SouthSaxons, because Wulfere adopted him in baptism. And Eoppa, a masspriest, by command of Wilfrid
and King Wulfere, was the first of men who brought baptism to the people of the Isle of Wight.
A.D. 664. This year the sun was eclipsed, on the eleventh of May; and Erkenbert, King of Kent, having died,
Egbert his son succeeded to the kingdom. Colman with his companions this year returned to his own country.
This same year there was a great plague in the island Britain, in which died Bishop Tuda, who was buried at
Wayleigh Chad and Wilferth were consecrated And Archbishop Deusdedit died.
A.D. 667. This year Oswy and Egbert sent Wighard, a priest, to Rome, that he might be consecrated there
Archbishop of Canterbury; but he died as soon as he came thither.
((A.D. 667. This year Wighard went to Rome, even as King Oswy, and Egbert had sent him.))
A.D. 668. This year Theodore was consecrated archbishop, and sent into Britain.
A.D. 669. This year King Egbert gave to Bass, a masspriest, Reculver to build a minster upon.
A.D. 670. This year died Oswy, King of Northumberland, on the fifteenth day before the calends of March;
and Egferth his son reigned after him. Lothere, the nephew of Bishop Egelbert, succeeded to the bishopric
over the land of the WestSaxons, and held it seven years. He was consecrated by Archbishop Theodore.
Oswy was the son of Ethelfrith, Ethelfrith of Ethelric, Ethelric of Ida, Ida of Eoppa.
A.D. 671. This year happened that great destruction among the fowls.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 22
Page No 25
A.D. 672. This year died King Cenwal; and Sexburga his queen held the government one year after him.
A.D. 673. This year died Egbert, King of Kent; and the same year there was a synod at Hertford; and St.
Etheldritha began that monastery at Ely.
A.D. 674. This year Escwin succeeded to the kingdom of Wessex. He was the son of Cenfus, Cenfus of
Cenferth, Cenferth of Cuthgils, Cuthgils of Ceolwulf, Ceolwulf of Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic.
A.D. 675. This year Wulfere, the son of Penda, and Escwin, the son of Cenfus, fought at Bedwin. The same
year died Wulfere, and Ethelred succeeded to the government. In his time sent he to Rome Bishop Wilfrid to
the pope that then was, called Agatho, and told him by word and by letter, how his brothers Peada and
Wulfere, and the Abbot Saxulf, had wrought a minster, called Medhamsted; and that they had freed it, against
king and against bishop, from every service; and he besought him that he would confirm it with his writ and
with his blessing. And the pope sent then his writ to England, thus saying: "I Agatho, Pope of Rome, greet
well the worthy Ethelred, king of the Mercians, and the Archbishop Theodorus of Canterbury, and Saxulf, the
bishop of the Mercians, who before was abbot, and all the abbots that are in England; God's greeting and my
blessing. I have heard the petition of King Ethelred, and of the Archbishop Theodorus, and of the Bishop
Saxulf, and of the Abbot Cuthbald; and I will it, that it in all wise be as you have spoken it. And I ordain, in
behalf of God, and of St. Peter, and of all saints, and of every hooded head, that neither king, nor bishop, nor
earl, nor any man whatever, have any claim, or gable, or gild, or levy, or take any service of any kind, from
the abbey of Medhamsted. I command also, that no shirebishop be so bold as to hold an ordination or
consecration within this abbacy, except the abbot intreat him, nor have there any claim to proxies, or
synodals, or anything whatever of any kind. And I will, that the abbot be holden for legate of Rome over all
that island; and whatever abbot is there chosen by the monks that he be consecrated by the Archbishop of
Canterbury. I will and decree, that, whatever man may have made a vow to go to Rome, and cannot perform
it, either from infirmity, or for his lord's need, or from poverty, or from any other necessity of any kind
whatever, whereby he cannot come thither, be he of England, or of whatever other island he be, he may come
to that minster of Medhamsted, and have the same forgiveness of Christ and St. Peter, and of the abbot, and
of the monks, that he should have if he went to Rome. Now bid I thee, brother Theodorus, that thou let it be
proclaimed through all England, that a synod be gathered, and this writ be read and observed. Also I tell thee,
Bishop Saxulf, that, as thou desirest it, that the minster be free, so I forbid thee, and all the bishops that after
thee come, from Christ and from all his saints, that ye have no demand from that minster, except so much as
the abbot will. Now will I say in a word, that, whoso holdeth this writ and this decree, then be he ever
dwelling with God Almighty in the kingdom of heaven. And whoso breaketh it, then be he excommunicated,
and thrust down with Judas, and with all the devils in hell, except he come to repentance. Amen!" This writ
sent the Pope Agatho, and a hundred and twentyfive bishops, by Wilfrid, Archbishop of York, to England.
This was done after our Lord's Nativity 680, the sixth year of King Ethelred. Then the king commanded the
Archbishop Theodorus, that he should appoint a general Wittenmoot at the place called Hatfield. When they
were there collected, then he allowed the letter to be read that the pope sent thither; and all ratified and
confirmed it. Then said the king: "All things that my brother Peada, and my brother Wulfere, and my sisters,
Kyneburga and Kyneswitha, gave and granted to St. Peter and the abbot, these I will may stand; and I will in
my day increase it, for their souls and for my soul. Now give I St. Peter today into his minster, Medhamsted,
these lands, and all that thereto lyeth; that is, Bredon, Repings, Cadney, Swineshead, Hanbury, Lodeshall,
Scuffanhall, Cosford, Stratford, Wattleburn, Lushgard, Ethelhunisland, Bardney. These lands I give St.
Peter just as freely as I possessed them myself; and so, that none of my successors take anything therefrom.
Whoso doeth it, have he the curse of the Pope of Rome, and the curse of all bishops, and of all those that are
witnesses here. And this I confirm with the token of Christ." (+) "I Theodorus, Archbishop of Canterbury, am
witness to this charter of Medhamsted; and I ratify it with my hand, and I excommunicate all that break
anything thereof; and I bless all that hold it." (+) "I Wilfrid, Archbishop of York, am witness to this charter;
and I ratify this same curse." (+) "I Saxulf, who was first abbot, and now am bishop, I give my curse, and that
of all my successors, to those who break this." "I Ostritha, Ethelred's queen, confirm it." "I Adrian,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 23
Page No 26
legate, ratify it." "I Putta, Bishop of Rochester, subscribe it." "I Waldhere, Bishop of London, confirm
it." "I Cuthbald, abbot, ratify it; so that, whoso breaketh it, have he the cursing of all bishops and of all
christian folk. Amen."
A.D. 676. This year, in which Hedda succeeded to his bishopric, Escwin died; and Centwin obtained the
government of the West Saxons. Centwin was the son of Cynegils, Cynegils of Ceolwulf. Ethelred, king of
the Mercians, in the meantime, overran the land of Kent.
A.D. 678. This year appeared the cometstar in August, and shone every morning, during three months, like
a sunbeam. Bishop Wilfrid being driven from his bishopric by King Everth, two bishops were consecrated in
his stead, Bosa over the Deirians, and Eata over the Bernicians. About the same time also Eadhed was
consecrated bishop over the people of Lindsey, being the first in that division.
A.D. 679. This year Elwin was slain, by the river Trent, on the spot where Everth and Ethelred fought. This
year also died St. Etheldritha; and the monastery of Coldingiham was destroyed by fire from heaven.
A.D. 680. This year Archbishop Theodore appointed a synod at Hatfield; because he was desirous of
rectifying the belief of Christ; and the same year died Hilda, Abbess of Whitby.
A.D. 681. This year Trumbert was consecrated Bishop of Hexham, and Trumwin bishop of the Picts; for they
were at that time subject to this country. This year also Centwin pursued the Britons to the sea.
A.D. 684. This year Everth sent an army against the Scots, under the command of his alderman, Bright, who
lamentably plundered and burned the churches of God.
A.D. 685. This year King Everth commanded Cuthbert to be consecrated a bishop; and Archbishop Theodore,
on the first day of Easter, consecrated him at York Bishop of Hexham; for Trumbert had been deprived of
that see. The same year Everth was slain by the north sea, and a large army with him, on the thirteenth day
before the calends of June. He continued king fifteen winters; and his brother Elfrith succeeded him in the
government. Everth was the son of Oswy. Oswy of Ethelferth, Ethelferth of Ethelric, Ethelric of Ida, Ida of
Eoppa. About this time Ceadwall began to struggle for a kingdom. Ceadwall was the son of Kenbert, Kenbert
of Chad, Chad of Cutha, Cutha of Ceawlin, Ceawlin of Cynric, Cynric of Cerdic. Mull, who was afterwards
consigned to the flames in Kent, was the brother of Ceadwall. The same year died Lothhere, King of Kent;
and John was consecrated Bishop of Hexham, where he remained till Wilferth was restored, when John was
translated to York on the death of Bishop Bosa. Wilferth his priest was afterwards consecrated Bishop of
York, and John retired to his monastery (21) in the woods of Delta. This year there was in Britain a bloody
rain, and milk and butter were turned to blood.
((A.D. 685. And in this same year Cuthbert was consecrated Bishop of Hexham by Archbishop Theodore at
York, because Bishop Tumbert had been driven from the bishopric.))
A.D. 686. This year Ceadwall and his brother Mull spread devastation in Kent and the Isle of Wight. This
same Ceadwall gave to St. Peter's minster, at Medhamsted, Hook; which is situated in an island called
Egborough. Egbald at this time was abbot, who was the third after Saxulf; and Theodore was archbishop in
Kent.
A.D. 687. This year was Mull consigned to the flames in Kent, and twelve other men with him; after which,
in the same year, Ceadwall overran the kingdom of Kent.
A.D. 688. This year Ceadwall went to Rome, and received baptism at the hands of Sergius the pope, who
gave him the name of Peter; but in the course of seven nights afterwards, on the twelfth day before the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 24
Page No 27
calends of May, he died in his crisomcloths, and was buried in the church of St. Peter. To him succeeded Ina
in the kingdom of Wessex, and reigned thirtyseven winters. He founded the monastery of Glastonbury; after
which he went to Rome, and continued there to the end of his life. Ina was the son of Cenred, Cenred of
Ceolwald; Ceolwald was the brother of Cynegils; and both were the sons of Cuthwin, who was the son of
Ceawlin; Ceawlin was the son of Cynric, and Cynric of Cerdic.
((A.D. 688. This year King Caedwalla went to Rome, and received baptism of Pope Sergius, and he gave him
the name of Peter, and in about seven days afterwards, on the twelfth before the kalends of May, while he
was yet in his baptismal garments, he died: and he was buried in St. Peter's church. And Ina succeeded to the
kingdom of the WestSaxons after him, and he reigned twentyseven years.))
A.D. 690. This year Archbishop Theodore, who had been bishop twentytwo winters, departed this life, (22)
and was buried within the city of Canterbury. Bertwald, who before this was abbot of Reculver, on the
calends of July succeeded him in the see; which was ere this filled by Romish bishops, but henceforth with
English. Then were there two kings in Kent, Wihtred and Webherd.
A.D. 693. This year was Bertwald consecrated archbishop by Godwin, bishop of the Gauls, on the fifth day
before the nones of July; about which time died Gifmund, who was Bishop of Rochester; and Archbishop
Bertwald consecrated Tobias in his stead. This year also Dryhtelm (23) retired from the world.
A.D. 694. This year the people of Kent covenanted with Ina, and gave him 30,000 pounds in friendship,
because they had burned his brother Mull. Wihtred, who succeeded to the kingdom of Kent, and held it
thirtythree winters, was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Erkenbert, Erkenbert of Eadbald, Eadbald of Ethelbert.
And as soon as he was king, he ordained a great council to meet in the place that is called Bapchild; in which
presided Wihtred, King of Kent, the Archbishop of Canterbury, Brihtwald, and Bishop Tobias of Rochester;
and with him were collected abbots and abbesses, and many wise men, all to consult about the advantage of
God's churches that are in Kent. Now began the king to speak, and said, "I will that all the minsters and the
churches, that were given and bequeathed to the worship of God in the days of believing kings, my
predecessors, and in the days of my relations of King Ethelbert and of those that followed him shall so
remain to the worship of God, and stand fast for evermore. For I Wihtred, earthly king, urged on by the
heavenly king, and with the spirit of righteousness annealed, have of our progenitors learned this, that no
layman should have any right to possess himself of any church or of any of the things that belong to the
church. And, therefore, strongly and truly, we set and decree, and in the name of Almighty God, and of all
saints, we forbid all our succeeding kings, and aldermen, and all lawmen, ever, any lordship over churches,
and over all their appurtenances, which I or my elders in old days have given for a perpetual inheritance to
the glory of Christ and our Lady St. Mary, and the holy apostles. And look! when it happeneth, that bishop,
or abbot, or abbess, depart from this life, be it told the archbishop, and with his counsel and injunction be
chosen such as be worthy. And the life of him, that shall be chosen to so holy a thing, let the archbishop
examine, and his cleanness; and in no wise be chosen any one, or to so holy a thing consecrated, without the
archbishop's counsel. Kings shall appoint earls, and aldermen, sheriffs, and judges; but the archbishop shall
consult and provide for God's flock: bishops, and abbots, and abbesses, and priests, and deacons, he shall
choose and appoint; and also sanctify and confirm with good precepts and example, lest that any of God's
flock go astray and perish "
A.D. 697. This year the Southumbrians slew Ostritha, the queen of Ethelred, the sister of Everth.
A.D. 699. This year the Picts slew Alderman Burt.
A.D. 702. This year Kenred assumed the government of the Southumbrians.
A.D. 703. This year died Bishop Hedda, having held the see of Winchester twentyseven winters.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 25
Page No 28
A.D. 704. This year Ethelred, the son of Penda, King of Mercia, entered into a monastic life, having reigned
twentynine winters; and Cenred succeeded to the government.
A.D. 705. This year died Ealdferth, king of the Northumbrians, on the nineteenth day before the calends of
January, at Driffield; and was succeeded by his son Osred. Bishop Saxulf also died the same year.
A.D. 709. This year died Aldhelm, who was bishop by Westwood. The land of the WestSaxons was divided
into two bishoprics in the first days of Bishop Daniel; who held one whilst Aldhelm held the other. Before
this it was only one. Forthere succeeded to Aldhelm; and Ceolred succeeded to the kingdom of Mercia. And
Cenred went to Rome; and Offa with him. And Cenred was there to the end of his life. The same year died
Bishop Wilferth, at Oundle, but his body was carried to Ripon. He was the bishop whom King Everth
compelled to go to Rome.
A.D. 710. This year Acca, priest of Wilferth, succeeded to the bishopric that Wilferth ere held; and Alderman
Bertfrith fought with the Picts between Heugh and Carau. Ina also, and Nun his relative, fought with Grant,
king of the Welsh; and the same year Hibbald was slain.
A.D. 714. This year died Guthlac the holy, and King Pepin.
A.D. 715. This year Ina and Ceolred fought at Wanborough; (24) and King Dagobert departed this life.
A.D. 716. This year Osred, king of the Northumbrians, was slain near the southern borders. He reigned
eleven winters after Ealdferth. Cenred then succeeded to the government, and held it two years; then Osric,
who held it eleven years. This same year died Ceolred, king of the Mercians. His body lies at Lichfield; but
that of Ethelred, the son of Penda, at Bardney. Ethelbald then succeeded to the kingdom of Mercia, and held
it one and forty winters. Ethelbald was the son of Alwy, Alwy of Eawa, Eawa of Webba, whose genealogy is
already written. The venerable Egbert about this time converted the monks of Iona to the right faith, in the
regulation of Easter, and the ecclesiastical tonsure.
A.D. 718. This year died Ingild, the brother of Ina. Cwenburga and Cuthburga were their sisters. Cuthburga
reared the monastery of Wimburn; and, though given in marriage to Ealdferth, King of Northumberland, they
parted during their lives.
A.D. 721. This year Bishop Daniel went to Rome; and the same year Ina slew Cynewulf, the etheling. This
year also died the holy Bishop John; who was bishop thirtythree years, and eight months, and thirteen days.
His body now resteth at Beverley.
A.D. 722. This year Queen Ethelburga destroyed Taunton, which Ina had formerly built; Ealdbert wandered a
wretched exile in Surrey and Sussex; and Ina fought with the SouthSaxons.
A.D. 725. This year died Wihtred, King of Kent, on the ninth day before the calends of May, after a reign of
thirtytwo winters. His pedigree is above; and he was succeeded by Eadbert. Ina this year also fought with
the SouthSaxons, and slew Ealdbert, the etheling, whom he had before driven into exile.
A.D. 727. This year died Tobias, Bishop of Rochester: and Archbishop Bertwald consecrated Aldulf bishop
in his stead.
A.D. 728. This year (25) Ina went to Rome, and there gave up the ghost. He was succeeded in the kingdom of
Wessex by Ethelhard his relative, who held it fourteen years; but he fought this same year with Oswald the
etheling. Oswald was the son of Ethelbald, Ethelbald of Cynebald, Cynebald of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of
Ceawlin.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 26
Page No 29
A.D. 729. This year appeared the cometstar, and St. Egbert died in Iona. This year also died the etheling
Oswald; and Osric was slain, who was eleven winters king of Northumberland; to which kingdom Ceolwulf
succeeded, and held it eight years. The said Ceolwulf was the son of Cutha, Cutha of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of
Leodwald, Leodwald of Egwald, Egwald of Ealdhelm, Ealdhelm of Occa, Occa of Ida, Ida of Eoppa.
Archbishop Bertwald died this year on the ides of January. He was bishop thirtyseven winters, and six
months, and fourteen days. The same year Tatwine, who was before a priest at Bredon in Mercia, was
consecrated archbishop by Daniel Bishop of Winchester, Ingwald Bishop of London, Aldwin Bishop of
Lichfield, and Aldulf Bishop of Rochester, on the tenth day of June. He enjoyed the archbishopric about three
years.
((A.D. 729. And the same year Osric died; he was king eleven years; then Ceolwulf succeeded to the
kingdom, and held it eight years.))
A.D. 733. This year Ethelbald took Somerton; the sun was eclipsed; and Acca was driven from his bishopric.
A.D. 734. This year was the moon as if covered with blood; and Archbishop Tatwine and Bede departed this
life; and Egbert was consecrated bishop.
A.D. 735. This year Bishop Egbert received the pall at Rome.
A.D. 736. This year Archbishop Nothelm received the pall from the bishop of the Romans.
A.D. 737. This year Bishop Forthere and Queen Frithogitha went to Rome; and King Ceolwulf received the
clerical tonsure, giving his kingdom to Edbert, his uncle's son: who reigned one and twenty winters. Bishop
Ethelwold and Acca died this year, and Cynewulf was consecrated bishop. The same year also Ethelbald
ravaged the land of the Northumbrians.
A.D. 738. This year Eadbery, the son of Eata the son of Leodwald, succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom,
and held it one and twenty winters. Archbishop Egbert, the son of Eata, was his brother. They both rest under
one porch in the city of York.
A.D. 740. This year died King Ethelhard; and Cuthred, his relative, succeeded to the WestSaxon kingdom,
which he held fourteen winters, during which time he fought many hard battles with Ethelbald, king of the
Mercians. On the death of Archbishop Nothelm, Cuthbert was consecrated archbishop, and Dunn, Bishop of
Rochester. This year York was on fire.
A.D. 742. This year there was a large synod assembled at Cliff'sHoo; and there was Ethelbald, king of
Mercia, with Archbishop Cuthbert, and many other wise men.
A.D. 743. This year Ethelbald, king of Mercia, and Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought with the
Welsh.
A.D. 744. This year Daniel resigned the see of Winchester; to which Hunferth was promoted. The stars went
swiftly shooting; and Wilferth the younger, who had been thirty winters Bishop of York, died on the third day
before the calends of May.
A.D. 745. This year died Daniel. Fortythree winters had then elapsed since he received the episcopal
function.
A.D. 746. This year was King Selred slain.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
THE ANGLOSAXON CHRONICLE 27
Page No 30
A.D. 748. This year was slain Cynric, etheling of the West Saxons; Edbert, King of Kent, died; and
Ethelbert, son of King Wihtred, succeeded to the kingdom.
Part II
A.D. 750. This year Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought with the proud chief Ethelhun.
A.D. 752. This year, the twelfth of his reign, Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought at Burford (27) with
Ethelbald, king of the Mercians, and put him to flight.
A.D. 753. This year Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons, fought against the Welsh.
A.D. 754. This year died Cuthred, king of the WestSaxons; and Sebright, his relative, succeeded to the
kingdom, which he held one year; Cyneard succeeded Humferth in the see of Winchester; and Canterbury
was this year on fire.
A.D. 755. This year Cynewulf, with the consent of the WestSaxon council, deprived Sebright, his relative,
for unrighteous deeds, of his kingdom, except Hampshire; which he retained, until he slew the alderman who
remained the longest with him. Then Cynewulf drove him to the forest of Andred, where he remained, until a
swain stabbed him at Privett, and revenged the alderman, Cumbra. The same Cynewulf fought many hard
battles with the Welsh; and, about one and thirty winters after he had the kingdom, he was desirous of
expelling a prince called Cyneard, who was the brother of Sebright. But he having understood that the king
was gone, thinly attended, on a visit to a lady at Merton, (28) rode after him, and beset him therein;
surrounding the town without, ere the attendants of the king were aware of him. When the king found this, he
went out of doors, and defended himself with courage; till, having looked on the etheling, he rushed out upon
him, and wounded him severely. Then were they all fighting against the king, until they had slain him. As
soon as the king's thanes in the lady's bower heard the tumult, they ran to the spot, whoever was then ready.
The etheling immediately offered them life and rewards; which none of them would accept, but continued
fighting together against him, till they all lay dead, except one British hostage, and he was severely wounded.
When the king's thanes that were behind heard in the morning that the king was slain, they rode to the spot,
Osric his alderman, and Wiverth his thane, and the men that he had left behind; and they met the etheling at
the town, where the king lay slain. The gates, however, were locked against them, which they attempted to
force; but he promised them their own choice of money and land, if they would grant him the kingdom;
reminding them, that their relatives were already with him, who would never desert him. To which they
answered, that no relative could be dearer to them than their lord, and that they would never follow his
murderer. Then they besought their relatives to depart from him, safe and sound. They replied, that the same
request was made to their comrades that were formerly with the king; "And we are as regardless of the
result," they rejoined, "as our comrades who with the king were slain." Then they continued fighting at the
gates, till they rushed in, and slew the etheling and all the men that were with him; except one, who was the
godson of the alderman, and whose life he spared, though he was often wounded. This same Cynewulf
reigned one and thirty winters. His body lies at Winchester, and that of the etheling at Axminster. Their
paternal pedigree goeth in a direct line to Cerdic. The same year Ethelbald, king of the Mercians, was slain at
Seckington; and his body lies at Repton. He reigned one and forty years; and Bernred then succeeded to the
kingdom, which he held but a little while, and unprosperously; for King Offa the same year put him to flight,
and assumed the government; which he held nine and thirty winters. His son Everth held it a hundred and
forty days. Offa was the son of Thingferth, Thingferth of Enwulf, Enwulf of Osmod, Osmod of Eawa, Eawa
of Webba, Webba of Creoda, Creoda of Cenwald, Cenwald of Cnebba, Cnebba of Icel, Icel of Eomer, Eomer
of Angelthew, Angelthew of Offa, Offa of Wermund, Wermund of Witley, Witley of Woden.
((A.D. 755. This year Cynewulf deprived King Sigebert of his kingdom; and Sigebert's brother, Cynehard by
name, slew Cynewulf at Merton; and he reigned thirtyone years. And in the same year Ethelbald, king of the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 28
Page No 31
Mercians, was slain at Repton. And Offa succeeded to the kingdom of the Mercians, Bernred being driven
out.))
A.D. 757. This year Eadbert, king of the Northumbrians, received the tonsure, and his son Osulf the kingdom;
which he held one year. Him his own domestics slew on the ninth day before the kalends of August.
A.D. 758. This year died Archbishop Cuthbert. He held the archbishopric eighteen years.
A.D. 759. This year Bregowin was invested archbishop at Michaelmas, and continued four years. Mull
Ethelwold this year succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom, held it six winters, and then resigned it.
A.D. 760. This year died Ethelbert, King of Kent, who was the son of King Wihtred, and also of Ceolwulf.
A.D. 761. This year was the severe winter; and Mull, king of the Northumbrians, slew Oswin at
Edwin'sCliff, on the eighth day before the ides of August.
A.D. 762. This year died Archbishop Bregowin.
A.D. 763. This year Eanbert was invested archbishop, on the fortieth day over midwinter; and Frithwald,
Bishop of Whitern, died on the nones of May. He was consecrated at York, on the eighteenth day before the
calends of September, in the sixth year of the reign of Ceolwulf, and was bishop nine and twenty winters.
Then was Petwin consecrated Bishop of Whitern at Adlingfleet, on the sixteenth day before the calends of
August.
A.D. 764. This year Archbishop Eanbert received the pall.
A.D. 765. This year Alred succeeded to the kingdom of the Northumbrians, and reigned eight winters.
A.D. 766. This year died Archbishop Egbert at York, on the thirteenth day before the calends of December,
who was bishop thirtysix winters; and Frithbert at Hexham, who was bishop there thirtyfour winters.
Ethelbert was consecrated to York, and Elmund to Hexham.
A.D. 768. This year died King Eadbert, the son of Eata, on the fourteenth day before the calends of
September.
A.D. 772. This year died Bishop Mildred.
A.D. 774. This year the Northumbrians banished their king, Alred, from York at Eastertide; and chose
Ethelred, the son of Mull, for their lord, who reigned four winters. This year also appeared in the heavens a
red crucifix, after sunset; the Mercians and the men of Kent fought at Otford; and wonderful serpents were
seen in the land of the SouthSaxons.
A.D. 775. This year Cynewulf and Offa fought near Bensington, and Offa took possession of the town. In the
days of this king, Offa, there was an abbot at Medhamsted, called Beonna; who, with the consent of all the
monks of the minster, let to farm, to Alderman Cuthbert, ten copyhold lands at Swineshead, with leasow and
with meadow, and with all the appurtenances; provided that the said Cuthbert gave the said abbot fifty
pounds therefore, and each year entertainment for one night, or thirty shillings in money; (29) provided also,
that after his decease the said lands should revert to the monastery. The king, Offa, and King Everth, and
Archbishop Hibbert, and Bishop Ceolwulf, and Bishop Inwona, and Abbot Beonna, and many other bishops,
and abbots, and rich men, were witnesses to this. In the days of this same Offa was an alderman, of the name
of Brorda, who requested the king for his sake to free his own monastery, called Woking, because he would
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 29
Page No 32
give it to Medhamsted and St. Peter, and the abbot that then was, whose name was Pusa. Pusa succeeded
Beonna; and the king loved him much. And the king freed the monastery of Woking, against king, against
bishop, against earl, and against all men' so that no man should have any claim there, except St. Peter and the
abbot. This was done at the king's town called FreeRichburn.
A.D. 776. This year died Bishop Petwin, on the thirteenth day before the calends of October, having been
bishop fourteen winters. The same year Ethelbert was consecrated Bishop of Whitern, at York, on the
seventeenth day before the calends of July.
A.D. 778. This year Ethelbald and Herbert slew three high sheriffs Eldulf, the son of Bosa, at Coniscliff;
Cynewulf and Eggo at Helathyrn on the eleventh day before the calends of April. Then Elwald, having
banished Ethelred from his territory, seized on his kingdom, and reigned ten winters.
A.D. 780. This year a battle was fought between the OldSaxons and the Franks; and the highsheriffs of
Northumbria committed to the flames Alderman Bern at Silton, on the ninth day before the calends of
January. The same year Archbishop Ethelbert died at York, and Eanbald was consecrated in his stead; Bishop
Cynewulf retired to Holyisland; Elmund, Bishop of Hexham, died on the seventh day before the ides of
September, and Tilbert was consecrated in his stead, on the sixth day before the nones of October; Hibbald
was consecrated Bishop of Holyisland at Sockbury; and King Elwald sent to Rome for a pall in behoof of
Archbishop Eanbald.
A.D. 782. This year died Werburga, Queen of Ceolred, and Bishop Cynewulf, in Holyisland; and the same
year there was a synod at Acley.
A.D. 784. This year Cyneard slew King Cynewulf, and was slain himself, and eightyfour men with him.
Then Bertric undertook the government of the WestSaxons, and reigned sixteen years. His body is deposited
at Wareham; and his pedigree goeth in a direct line to Cerdic. At this time reigned Elmund king in Kent, the
father of Egbert; and Egbert was the father of Athulf.
A.D. 785. This year died Bothwin, Abbot of Ripon, and a litigious synod was holden at Chalkhythe;
Archbishop Eanbert resigned some part of his bishopric, Hibbert was appointed bishop by King Offa, and
Everth was consecrated king. In the meantime legates were sent from Rome to England by Pope Adrian, to
renew the blessings of faith and peace which St. Gregory sent us by the mission of Bishop Augustine, and
they were received with every mark of honour and respect.
A.D. 787. This year King Bertric took Edburga the daughter of Offa to wife. And in his days came first three
ships of the Northmen from the land of robbers. The reve (30) then rode thereto, and would drive them to the
king's town; for he knew not what they were; and there was he slain. These were the first ships of the Danish
men that sought the land of the English nation.
A.D. 788. This year there was a synod assembled at Fingall in Northumberland, on the fourth day before the
nones of September; and Abbot Albert departed this life.
A.D. 789. This year Elwald, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by Siga, on the eleventh day before the
calends of October; and a heavenly light was often seen on the spot where he was slain. He was buried in the
church of Hexham; and Osred, the son of Alred, who was his nephew, succeeded him in the government.
This ),ear there was a synod assembled at Acley.
A.D. 790. This year Archbishop Eanbert died, and Abbot Ethelherd was chosen archbishop the same year.
Osred, king of the Northumbrians, was betrayed and banished from his kingdom, and Ethelred, the son of
Ethelwald, succeeded him.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 30
Page No 33
A.D. 791. This year Baldulf was consecrated Bishop of Whitern, on the sixteenth day before the calends of
August, by Archbishop Eanbald and Bishop Ethelbert.
A.D. 792. This year Offa, King of Mercia, commanded that King Ethelbert should be beheaded; and Osred,
who had been king of the Northumbrians, returning home after his exile, was apprehended and slain, on the
eighteenth day before the calends of October. His body is deposited at Tinemouth. Ethelred this year, on the
third day before the calends of October, took unto himself a new wife, whose name was Elfleda.
A.D. 793. This year came dreadful forewarnings over the land of the Northumbrians, terrifying the people
most woefully: these were immense sheets of light rushing through the air, and whirlwinds, and fiery,
dragons flying across the firmament. These tremendous tokens were soon followed by a great famine: and not
long after, on the sixth day before the ides of January in the same year, the harrowing inroads of heathen men
made lamentable havoc in the church of God in Holyisland, by rapine and slaughter. Siga died on the eighth
day before the calends of March.
A.D. 794. This year died Pope Adrian; and also Offa, King of Mercia, on the fourth day before the ides of
August, after he had reigned forty winters. Ethelred, king of the Northumbrians, was slain by his own people,
on the thirteenth day before the calends of May; in consequence of which, Bishops Ceolwulf and Eadbald
retired from the land. Everth took to the government of Mercia, and died the same year. Eadbert, whose other
name was Pryn, obtained the kingdom of Kent; and Alderman Ethelherd died on the calends of August. In the
meantime, the heathen armies spread devastation among the Northumbrians, and plundered the monastery of
King Everth at the mouth of the Wear. There, however, some of their leaders were slain; and some of their
ships also were shattered to pieces by the violence of the weather; many of the crew were drowned; and
some, who escaped alive to the shore, were soon dispatched at the mouth of the river.
A.D. 795. This year was the moon eclipsed, between cockcrowing and dawn, (31) on the fifth day before
the calends of April; and Erdulf succeeded to the Northumbrian kingdom on the second before the ides of
May. He was afterwards consecrated and raised to his throne, at York, on the seventh day before the calends
of June, by Archbishop Eanbald, and Bishops Ethelbert, Hibbald, and Baldulf.
A.D. 796. This year died Archbishop Eanbald, on the fourth day before the ides of August; and his body is
deposited at York. The same year also died Bishop Ceolwulf; and another Eanbald was consecrated to the see
of the former, on the nineteenth day before the calends of September. About the same time Cynewulf, King
of Mercia, made inroads upon the inhabitants of Kent as far as the marsh; and the Mercians seized Edbert
Pryn, their king, led him bound into Mercia, and suffered men to pick out his eyes, and cut off his hands. (32)
And Ethelard, Archbishop of Canterbury, held a synod, wherein he ratified and confirmed, by command of
Pope Leo, all things concerning God's monasteries that were fixed in Witgar's days, and in other king's days,
saying thus: "I Ethelard, the humble Archbishop of Canterbury, with the unanimous concurrence of the whole
synod, and of all the congregations of all the minsters, to which in former days freedom was given by faithful
men, in God's name and by his terrible judgment do decree, as I have command from Pope Leo, that
henceforth none dare to choose them lords from lewd men over God's inheritance; but, as it is in the writ that
the pope has given, or holy men have settled, our fathers and our teachers, concerning holy minsters, so they
continue untainted without any resistance. If there is any man that will not observe this decree of God, of our
pope, and of us, but overlooketh it, and holdeth it for nought, let them know, that they shall give an account
before the judgmentseat of God. And I Ethelard, archbishop, with twelve bishops, and with three and twenty
abbots, this same with the roodtoken of Christ confirm and fasten."
((A.D. 796. This year Offa, king of the Mercians, died on the fourth before the kalends of August; he reigned
forty years.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 31
Page No 34
A.D. 797. This year the Romans cut out the tongue of Pope Leo, put out his eyes, and drove him from his see;
but soon after, by the assistance of God, he could see and speak, and became pope as he was before. Eanbald
also received the pall on the sixth day before the ides of September, and Bishop Ethelherd died on the third
before the calends of November.
A.D. 798. This year a severe battle was fought in the Northumbrian territory, during Lent, on the fourth day
before the nones of April, at Whalley; wherein Alric, the son of Herbert, was slain, and many others with
him.
A.D. 799. This year Archbishop Ethelbert, and Cynbert, Bishop of Wessex, went to Rome. In the meantime
Bishop Alfun died at Sudbury, and was buried at Dunwich. After him Tidfrith was elected to the see; and
Siric, king of the East Saxons, went to Rome. In this year the body of Witburga was found entire, and free
from decay, at Dercham, after a lapse of five and fifty years from the period of her decease.
A.D. 800. This year was the moon eclipsed, at eight in the evening, on the seventeenth day before the calends
of February; and soon after died King Bertric and Alderman Worr. Egbert succeeded to the WestSaxon
kingdom; and the same day Ethelmund, alderman of the Wiccians, rode over the Thames at Kempsford;
where he was met by Alderman Woxtan, with the men of Wiltshire, and a terrible conflict ensued, in which
both the commanders were slain, but the men of Wiltshire obtained the victory.
((A.D. 801. This year Beornmod was ordained Bishop of Rochester.))
A.D. 802. This year was the moon eclipsed, at dawn, on the thirteenth day before the calends of January; and
Bernmod was consecrated Bishop of Rochester.
A.D. 803. This year died Hibbald, Bishop of Holyisland, on the twentyfourth of June, and Egbert was
consecrated in his stead, on the thirteenth of June following. Archbishop Ethelherd also died in Kent, and
Wulfred was chosen archbishop in his stead. Abbot Forthred, in the course of the same year, departed this
life.
A.D. 804. This year Archbishop Wulfred received his pall.
A.D. 805. This year died King Cuthred in Kent, and Abbess Colburga, and Alderman Herbert.
A.D. 806. This year was the moon eclipsed, on the first o[ September; Erdwulf, king of the Northumbrians,
was banished from his dominions; and Eanbert, Bishop of Hexham, departed this life. This year also, on the
next day before the nones of June, a cross was seen in the moon, on a Wednesday, at the dawn; and
afterwards, during the same year, on the third day before the calends of September, a wonderful circle was
displayed about the sun.
A.D. 807. This year was the sun eclipsed, precisely at eleven in the morning, on the seventeenth day before
the calends of August.
A.D. 812. This year died the Emperor Charlemagne, after a reign of five and forty winters; and Archbishop
Wulfred, accompanied by Wigbert, Bishop of Wessex, undertook a journey to Rome.
A.D. 813. This year Archbishop Wulfred returned to his own see, with the blessing of Pope Leo; and King
Egbert spread devastation in Cornwall from east to west.
A.D. 814. This year died Leo, the noble and holy pope; and Stephen succeeded him in the papal government.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 32
Page No 35
A.D. 816. This year died Pope Stephen; and Paschalis was consecrated pope after him. This same year the
school of the English nation at Rome was destroyed by fire.
A.D. 819. This year died Cenwulf, King of Mercia; and Ceolwulf (33) succeeded him. Alderman Eadbert also
departed this life.
A.D. 821. This year Ceolwulf was deprived of his kingdom.
A.D. 822. This year two aldermen were slain, whose names were Burhelm and Mucca; and a synod was
holden at Cliff'sHoo.
A.D. 823. This year a battle was fought between the Welsh in Cornwall and the people of Devonshire, at
Camelford; and in the course of the same year Egbert, king of the WestSaxons, and Bernwulf, King of
Mercia, fought a battle at Wilton, in which Egbert gained the victory, but there was great slaughter on both
sides. Then sent he his son Ethelwulf into Kent, with a large detachment from the main body of the army,
accompanied by his bishop, Elstan, and his alderman, Wulfherd; who drove Baldred, the king, northward
over the Thames. Whereupon the men of Kent immediately submitted to him; as did also the inhabitants of
Surrey, and Sussex, and Essex; who had been unlawfully kept from their allegiance by his relatives. The
same year also, the king of the EastAngles, and his subjects besought King Egbert to give them peace and
protection against the terror of the Mercians; whose king, Bernwulf, they slew in the course of the same year.
A.D. 825. This year Ludecan, King of Mercia, was slain, and his five aldermen with him; after which Wiglaf
succeeded to the kingdom.
A.D. 827. This year was the moon eclipsed, on midwinter's mass night; and King Egbert, in the course of
the same year, conquered the Mercian kingdom, and all that is south of the Humber, being the eighth king
who was sovereign of all the British dominions. Ella, king of the SouthSaxons, was the first who possessed
so large a territory; the second was Ceawlin, king of the West Saxons: the third was Ethelbert, King of
Kent; the fourth was Redwald, king of the EastAngles; the fifth was Edwin, king of the Northumbrians; the
sixth was Oswald, who succeeded him; the seventh was Oswy, the brother of Oswald; the eighth was Egbert,
king of the WestSaxons. This same Egbert led an army against the Northumbrians as far as Dore, where
they met him, and offered terms of obedience and subjection, on the acceptance of which they returned home.
A.D. 828. This year Wiglaf recovered his Mercian kingdom, and Bishop Ethelwald departed this life. The
same year King Egbert led an army against the people of NorthWales, and compelled them all to peaceful
submission.
A.D. 829. This year died Archbishop Wulfred; and Abbot Feologild was after him chosen to the see, on the
twentyfifth of April, and consecrated on a Sunday, the eleventh of June. On the thirteenth of August he was
dead!
A.D. 830. This year Ceolnoth was chosen and consecrated archbishop on the death of Abbot Feologild.
A.D. 831. This year Archbishop Ceolnoth received the pall.
A.D. 832. This year heathen men overran the Isle of Shepey.
A.D. 833. This year fought King Egbert with thirtyfive pirates at Charmouth, where a great slaughter was
made, and the Danes remained masters of the field. Two bishops, Hereferth and Wigen, and two aldermen,
Dudda and Osmod, died the same year.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 33
Page No 36
A.D. 835. This year came a great naval armament into WestWales, where they were joined by the people,
who commenced war against Egbert, the WestSaxon king. When he heard this, he proceeded with his army
against them and fought with them at Hengeston, where he put to flight both the Welsh and the Danes.
A.D. 836. This year died King Egbert. Him Offa, King of Mercia, and Bertric, the WestSaxon king, drove
out of England into France three years before he was king. Bertric assisted Offa because he had married his
daughter. Egbert having afterwards returned, reigned thirtyseven winters and seven months. Then
Ethelwulf, the son of Egbert, succeeded to the WestSaxon kingdom; and he gave his son Athelstan the
kingdom of Kent, and of Essex, and of Surrey, and of Sussex.
A.D. 837. This year Alderman Wulfherd fought at Hamton with thirtythree pirates, and after great slaughter
obtained the victory, but he died the same year. Alderman Ethelhelm also, with the men of Dorsetshire,
fought with the Danish army in Portlandisle, and for a good while put them to flight; but in the end the
Danes became masters of the field, and slew the alderman.
A.D. 838. This year Alderman Herbert was slain by the heathens, and many men with him, among the
Marshlanders. The same year, afterwards, in Lindsey, EastAnglia, and Kent, were many men slain by the
army.
A.D. 839. This year there was great slaughter in London, Canterbury, and Rochester.
A.D. 840. This year King Ethelwulf fought at Charmouth with thirtyfive ship'screws, and the Danes
remained masters of the place. The Emperor Louis died this year.
A.D. 845. This year Alderman Eanwulf, with the men of Somersetshire, and Bishop Ealstan, and Alderman
Osric, with the men of Dorsetshire, fought at the mouth of the Parret with the Danish army; and there, after
making a great slaughter, obtained the victory.
A.D. 851. This year Alderman Ceorl, with the men of Devonshire, fought the heathen army at Wemburg, and
after making great slaughter obtained the victory. The same year King Athelstan and Alderman Elchere
fought in their ships, and slew a large army at Sandwich in Kent, taking nine ships and dispersing the rest.
The heathens now for the first time remained over winter in the Isle of Thanet. The same year came three
hundred and fifty ships into the mouth of the Thames; the crew of which went upon land, and stormed
Canterbury and London; putting to flight Bertulf, king of the Mercians, with his army; and then marched
southward over the Thames into Surrey. Here Ethelwulf and his son Ethelbald, at the head of the
WestSaxon army, fought with them at Ockley, and made the greatest slaughter of the heathen army that we
have ever heard reported to this present day. There also they obtained the victory.
A.D. 852. About this time Abbot Ceolred of Medhamsted, with the concurrence of the monks, let to hand the
land of Sempringham to Wulfred, with the provision, that after his demise the said land should revert to the
monastery; that Wulfred should give the land of Sleaford to Meohamsted, and should send each year into the
monastery sixty loads of wood, twelve loads of coal, six loads of peat, two tuns full of fine ale, two neats'
carcases, six hundred loaves, and ten kilderkins of Welsh ale; one horse also each year, and thirty shillings,
and one night's entertainment. This agreement was made in the presence of King Burhred. Archbishop
Ceolnoth, Bishops Tunbert, Kenred, Aldhun, and Bertred; Abbots Witred and Weftherd, Aldermen Ethelherd
and Hunbert, and many others.
A.D. 853. This year Burhred, King of Mercia, with his council, besought King Ethelwulf to assist him to
subdue NorthWales. He did so; and with an army marched over Mercia into NorthWales, and made all the
inhabitants subject to him. The same year King Ethelwulf sent his son Alfred to Rome; and Leo, who was
then pope, consecrated him king, and adopted him as his spiritual son. The same year also Elchere with the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 34
Page No 37
men of Kent, and Huda with the men of Surrey, fought in the Isle of Thanet with the heathen army, and soon
obtained the victory; but there were many men slain and drowned on either hand, and both the aldermen
killed. Burhred, the Mercian king, about this time received in marriage the daughter of Ethelwulf, king of the
WestSaxons.
A.D. 854. This year the heathen men (34) for the first time remained over winter in the Isle of Shepey. The
same year King Ethelwulf registered a TENTH of his land over all his kingdom for the honour of God and for
his own everlasting salvation. The same year also he went to Rome with great pomp, and was resident there a
twelvemonth. Then he returned homeward; and Charles, king of the Franks, gave him his daughter, whose
name was Judith, to be his queen. After this he came to his people, and they were fain to receive him; but
about two years after his residence among the Franks he died; and his body lies at Winchester. He reigned
eighteen years and a half. And Ethelwulf was the son of Egbert, Egbert of Ealhmund, Ealhmund of Eafa, Eafa
of Eoppa, Eoppa of Ingild; Ingild was the brother of Ina, king of the WestSaxons, who held that kingdom
thirtyseven winters, and afterwards went to St. Peter, where he died. And they were the sons of Cenred,
Cenred of Ceolwald, Ceolwald of Cutha, Cutha of Cuthwin, Cuthwin of Ceawlin, Ceawlin of Cynric, Cynric
of Creoda, Creoda of Cerdic, Cerdic of Elesa, Elesa of Esla, Esla of Gewis, Gewis of Wig, Wig of Freawine,
Freawine of Frithugar, Frithugar of Brond, Brond of Balday, Balday of Woden, Woden of Frithuwald,
Frithuwald of Freawine, Freawine of Frithuwualf, Frithuwulf of Finn, Finn of Godwulf, Godwulf of Great,
Great of Taetwa, Taetwa of Beaw, Beaw of Sceldwa, Sceldwa of Heremod, Heremod of Itermon, Itermon of
Hathra, Hathra of Hwala, Hwala of Bedwig, Bedwig of Sceaf; that is, the son of Noah, who was born in
Noah's ark: Laznech, Methusalem, Enoh, Jared, Malalahel, Cainion, Enos, Seth, Adam the first man, and our
Father, that is, Christ. Amen. Then two sons of Ethelwulf succeeded to the kingdom; Ethelbald to Wessex,
and Ethelbert to Kent, Essex, Surrey, and Sussex. Ethelbald reigned five years. Alfred, his third son,
Ethelwulf had sent to Rome; and when the pope heard say that he was dead, he consecrated Alfred king, and
held him under spiritual hands, as his father Ethelwulf had desired, and for which purpose he had sent him
thither.
((A.D. 855. And on his return homewards he took to (wife) the daughter of Charles, king of the French,
whose name was Judith, and he came home safe. And then in about two years he died, and his body lies at
Winchester: and he reigned eighteen years and a half, and he was the son of Egbert. And then his two sons
succeeded to the kingdom; Ethelbald to the kingdom of the WestSaxons, and Ethelbert to the kingdom of
the Kentishmen, and of the EastSaxons, and of Surrey, and of the SouthSaxons. And he reigned five
years.))
A.D. 860. This year died King Ethelbald, and his body lies at Sherborn. Ethelbert his brother then succeeded
to the whole kingdom, and held it in good order and great tranquillity. In his days came a large naval force up
into the country, and stormed Winchester. But Alderman Osric, with the command of Hampshire, and
Alderman Ethelwulf, with the command of Berkshire, fought against the enemy, and putting them to flight,
made themselves masters of the field of battle. The said Ethelbert reigned five years, and his body lies at
Sherborn.
A.D. 861. This year died St. Swithun, bishop.
A.D. 865. This year sat the heathen army in the isle of Thanet, and made peace with the men of Kent, who
promised money therewith; but under the security of peace, and the promise of money, the army in the night
stole up the country, and overran all Kent eastward.
A.D. 866. This year Ethered, (35) brother of Ethelbert, took to the WestSaxon government; and the same
year came a large heathen army into England, and fixed their winterquarters in East Anglia, where they
were soon horsed; and the inhabitants made peace with them.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 35
Page No 38
A.D. 867. This year the army went from the EastAngles over the mouth of the Humber to the
Northumbrians, as far as York. And there was much dissension in that nation among themselves; they had
deposed their king Osbert, and had admitted Aella, who had no natural claim. Late in the year, however, they
returned to their allegiance, and they were now fighting against the common enemy; having collected a vast
force, with which they fought the army at York; and breaking open the town, some of them entered in. Then
was there an immense slaughter of the Northumbrians, some within and some without; and both the kings
were slain on the spot. The survivors made peace with the army. The same year died Bishop Ealstan, who had
the bishopric of Sherborn fifty winters, and his body lies in the town.
A.D. 868. This year the same army went into Mercia to Nottingham, and there fixed their winterquarters;
and Burhred, king of the Mercians, with his council, besought Ethered, king of the WestSaxons, and Alfred,
his brother; that they would assist them in fighting against the army. And they went with the West Saxon
army into Mercia as far as Nottingham, and there meeting the army on the works, they beset them within. But
there was no heavy fight; for the Mercians made peace with the army.
A.D. 869. This year the army went back to York, and sat there a year.
A.D. 870. This year the army rode over Mercia into EastAnglia, and there fixed their winterquarters at
Thetford. And in the winter King Edmund fought with them; but the Danes gained the victory, and slew the
king; whereupon they overran all that land, and destroyed all the monasteries to which they came. The names
of the leaders who slew the king were Hingwar and Hubba. At the same time came they to Medhamsted,
burning and breaking, and slaying abbot and monks, and all that they there found. They made such havoc
there, that a monastery, which was before full rich, was now reduced to nothing. The same year died
Archbishop Ceolnoth; and Ethered, Bishop of Witshire, was chosen Archbishop of Canterbury.
A.D. 871. This year came the army to Reading in Wessex; and in the course of three nights after rode two
earls up, who were met by Alderman Ethelwulf at Englefield; where he fought with them, and obtained the
victory. There one of them was slain, whose name was Sidrac. About four nights after this, King Ethered and
Alfred his brother led their main army to Reading, where they fought with the enemy; and there was much
slaughter on either hand, Alderman Ethelwulf being among the skain; but the Danes kept possession of the
field. And about four nights after this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with all the army on
Ashdown, and the Danes were overcome. They had two heathen kings, Bagsac and Healfden, and many earls;
and they were in two divisions; in one of which were Bagsac and Healfden, the heathen kings, and in the
other were the earls. King Ethered therefore fought with the troops of the kings, and there was King Bagsac
slain; and Alfred his brother fought with the troops of the earls, and there were slain Earl Sidrac the elder,
Earl Sidrac the younger, Earl Osbern, Earl Frene, and Earl Harold. They
put both the troops to flight; there were many thousands of the slain, and they continued fighting till night.
Within a fortnight of this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with the army at Basing; and there the
Danes had the victory. About two months after this, King Ethered and Alfred his brother fought with the
army at Marden. They were in two divisions; and they put them both to flight, enjoying the victory for some
time during the day; and there was much slaughter on either hand; but the Danes became masters of the field;
and there was slain Bishop Heahmund, with many other good men. After this fight came a vast army in the
summer to Reading. And after the Easter of this year died King Ethered. He reigned five years, and his body
lies at Winburnminster. Then Alfred, his brother, the son of Ethelwulf, took to the kingdom of Wessex. And
within a month of this, King Alfred fought against all the Army with a small force at Wilton, and long
pursued them during the day; but the Danes got possession of the field. This year were nine general battles
fought with the army in the kingdom south of the Thames; besides those skirmishes, in which Alfred the
king's brother, and every single alderman, and the thanes of the king, oft rode against them; which were
accounted nothing. This year also were slain nine earls, and one king; and the same year the WestSaxons
made peace with the army.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 36
Page No 39
((A.D. 871. And the Danishmen were overcome; and they had two heathen kings, Bagsac and Halfdene, and
many earls; and there was King Bagsac slain, and these earls; Sidrac the elder, and also Sidrac the younger,
Osbern, Frene, and Harold; and the army was put to flight.))
A.D. 872. This year went the army to London from Reading, and there chose their winterquarters. Then the
Mercians made peace with the army.
A.D. 873. This year went the army against the Northumbrians, and fixed their winterquarters at Torksey in
Lindsey. And the Mercians again made peace with the army.
A.D. 874. This year went the army from Lindsey to Repton, and there took up their winterquarters, drove
the king, Burhred, over sea, when he had reigned about two and twenty winters, and subdued all that land. He
then went to Rome, and there remained to the end of his life. And his body lies in the church of Sancta Maria,
in the school of the English nation. And the same year they gave Ceolwulf, an unwise king's thane, the
Mercian kingdom to hold; and he swore oaths to them, and gave hostages, that it should be ready for them on
whatever day they would have it; and he would be ready with himself, and with all those that would remain
with him, at the service of the army.
A.D. 875. This year went the army from Repton; and Healfden advanced with some of the army against the
Northumbrians, and fixed his winterquarters by the river Tine. The army then subdued that land, and oft
invaded the Picts and the Strathclydwallians. Meanwhile the three kings, Guthrum, Oskytel, and Anwind,
went from Repton to Cambridge with a vast army, and sat there one year. This summer King Alfred went out
to sea with an armed fleet, and fought with seven shiprovers, one of whom he took, and dispersed the
others.
A.D. 876. This year Rolla penetrated Normandy with his army; and he reigned fifty winters. And this year the
army stole into Wareham, a fort of the WestSaxons. The king afterwards made peace with them; and they
gave him as hostages those who were worthiest in the army; and swore with oaths on the holy bracelet, which
they would not before to any nation, that they would readily go out of his kingdom. Then, under colour of
this, their cavalry stole by night into Exeter. The same year Healfden divided the land of the Northumbrians;
so that they became afterwards their harrowers and plowers.
((A.D. 876. And in this same year the army of the Danes in England swore oaths to King Alfred upon the
holy ring, which before they would not do to any nation; and they delivered to the king hostages from among
the most distinguished men of the army, that they would speedily depart from his kingdom; and that by night
they broke.))
A.D. 877. This year came the Danish army into Exeter from Wareham; whilst the navy sailed west about,
until they met with a great mist at sea, and there perished one hundred and twenty ships at Swanwich. (36)
Meanwhile King Alfred with his army rode after the cavalry as far as Exeter; but he could not overtake them
before their arrival in the fortress, where they could not be come at. There they gave him as many hostages as
he required, swearing with solemn oaths to observe the strictest amity. In the harvest the army entered
Mercia; some of which they divided among them, and some they gave to Ceolwulf.
A.D. 878. This year about midwinter, after twelfthnight, the Danish army stole out to Chippenham, and
rode over the land of the WestSaxons; where they settled, and drove many of the people over sea; and of the
rest the greatest part they rode down, and subdued to their will; ALL BUT ALFRED THE KING. He,
with a little band, uneasily sought the woods and fastnesses of the moors. And in the winter of this same year
the brother of Ingwar and Healfden landed in Wessex, in Devonshire, with three and twenty ships, and there
was he slain, and eight hundred men with him, and forty of his army. There also was taken the war flag,
which they called the RAVEN. In the Easter of this year King Alfred with his little force raised a work at
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 37
Page No 40
Athelney; from which he assailed the army, assisted by that part of Somersetshire which was nighest to it.
Then, in the seventh week after Easter, he rode to Brixton by the eastern side of Selwood; and there came out
to meet him all the people of Somersersetshire, and Wiltshire, and that part of Hampshire which is on this
side of the sea; and they rejoiced to see him. Then within one night he went from this retreat to Hey; and
within one night after he proceeded to Heddington; and there fought with all the army, and put them to flight,
riding after them as far as the fortress, where he remained a fortnight. Then the army gave him hostages with
many oaths, that they would go out of his kingdom. They told him also, that their king would receive
baptism. And they acted accordingly; for in the course of three weeks after, King Guthrum, attended by some
thirty of the worthiest men that were in the army, came to him at Aller, which is near Athelney, and there the
king became his sponsor in baptism; and his crisomleasing was at Wedmor. He was there twelve nights with
the king, who honoured him and his attendants with many presents.
A.D. 879. This year went the army from Chippenham to Cirencester, and sat there a year. The same year
assembled a band of pirates, and sat at Fulham by the Thames. The same year also the sun was eclipsed one
hour of the day.
A.D. 880. This year went the army from Cirencester into East Anglia, where they settled, and divided the
land. The same year went the army over sea, that before sat at Fulham, to Ghent in Frankland, and sat there a
year.
A.D. 881. This year went the army higher up into Frankland, and the Franks fought with them; and there was
the army horsed after the battle.
A.D. 882. This year went the army up along the Maese far into Frankland, and there sat a year; and the same
year went King Alfred out to sea with a fleet; and fought with four shiprovers of the Danes, and took two of
their ships; wherein all the men were slain; and the other two surrendered; but the men were severely cut and
wounded ere they surrendered.
A.D. 883. This year went the army up the Scheldt to Conde, and there sat a year. And Pope Marinus sent
King Alfred the "lignum Domini". The same year led Sighelm and Athelstan to Rome the alms which King
Alfred ordered thither, and also in India to St. Thomas and to St. Bartholomew. Then they sat against the
army at London; and there, with the favour of God, they were very successful after the performance of their
vows.
A.D. 884. This year went the army up the Somne to Amiens, and there remained a year. This year died the
benevolent Bishop Athelwold.
A.D. 885. This year separated the beforementioned army in two; one part east, another to Rochester. This
city they surrounded, and wrought another fortress around themselves. The people, however, defended the
city, until King Alfred came out with his army. Then went the enemy to their ships, and forsook their work.
There were they provided with horses; and soon after, in the same summer, they went over sea again. The
same year sent King Alfred a fleet from Kent into EastAnglia. As soon as they came to Stourmouth, there
met them sixteen ships of the pirates. And they fought with them, took all the ships, and slew the men. As
they returned homeward with their booty, they met a large fleet of the pirates, and fought with them the same
day; but the Danes had the victory. The same year, ere midwinter, died Charles, king of the Franks. He was
slain by a boar; and one year before his brother died, who had also the Western kingdom. They were both the
sons of Louis, who also had the Western kingdom, and died the same year that the sun was eclipsed. He was
the son of that Charles whose daughter Ethelwulf, king of the WestSaxons, had to wife. And the same year
collected a great fleet against OldSaxony; and there was a great fight twice in the year, and the Saxons had
the victory. There were the Frieslanders with them. And the same year succeeded Charles to the Western
kingdom, and to all the territory this side of the Mediterranean and beyond, as his greatgrandfather held it,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 38
Page No 41
except the Lidwiccians. The said Charles was the son of Louis, who was the brother of that Charles who was
the father of Judith, whom Ethelwulf, king of the WestSaxons, married. They were the sons of Louis, who
was the son of the elder Charles, who was the son of Pepin. The same year died the good Pope Martin, who
freed the English school at the request of Alfred, king of the WestSaxons. And he sent him great gifts in
relics, and a part of the rood on which Christ suffered. And the same year the army in EastAnglia brake the
truce with King Alfred.
A.D. 886. This year went the army back again to the west, that before were bent eastward; and proceeding
upwards along the Seine, fixed their winterquarters in the city of Paris. (37) The same year also King Alfred
fortified the city of London; and the whole English nation turned to him, except that part of it which was held
captive by the Danes. He then committed the city to the care of Alderman Ethered, to hold it under him.
A.D. 887. This year the army advanced beyond the bridge at Paris; (38) and then upwards, along the Seine, to
the Marne. Then upwards on the Marne as far as Chezy; and in their two stations, there and on the Yonne,
they abode two winters. This same year died Charles, king of the Franks. Arnulf, his brother's son, had six
weeks before his death bereft him of his kingdom; which was now divided into five portions, and five kings
were consecrated thereto. This, however, was done with the consent of Arnulf; and they agreed that they
should hold in subjection to him; because none of them had by birth any claim on the father's side, except
him alone. Arnulf, therefore, dwelt in the country eastward of the Rhine; Rodulf took to the middle district;
Oda to the western; whilst Berenger and Witha became masters of Lombardy and the Cisalpine territory. But
they held their dominion in great discord; fought two general battles, and frequently overran the country in
partial encounters, displacing each other several times. The same year also, in which the Danish army
advanced beyond the bridge at Paris, Alderman Ethelhelm led the alms of the WestSaxons and of King
Alfred to Rome.
A.D. 888. This year Alderman Beeke conducted the alms of the WestSaxons and of King Alfred to Rome;
but Queen Ethelswith, who was the sister of King Alfred, died on the way to Rome; and her body lies at
Pavia. The same year also Ethered, Archbishop of Canterbury and Alderman Ethelwold, died in one month.
A.D. 889. This year there was no journey to Rome; except that King Alfred sent two messengers with letters.
A.D. 890. This year Abbot Bernhelm conducted the alms of the WestSaxons and of King Alfred to Rome;
and Guthrum, king of the Northern men, departed this life, whose baptismal name was Athelstan. He was the
godson of King Alfred; and he abode among the EastAngles, where he first established a settlement. The
same year also went the army from the Seine to Saint Lo, which is between the Bretons and the Franks;
where the Bretons fought with them, obtained the victory, and drove them out into a river, in which many of
them were drowned. This year also was Plegmund chosen by God and all his saints to the archbishopric in
Canterbury.
A.D. 891. This year went the army eastward; and King Arnulf fought with the landforce, ere the ships
arrived, in conjunction with the eastern Franks, and Saxons, and Bavarians, and put them to flight. And three
Scots came to King Alfred in a boat without any oars from Ireland; whence they stole away, because they
would live in a state of pilgrimage, for the love of God, they recked not where. The boat in which they came
was made of two hides and a half; and they took with them provisions for seven nights; and within seven
nights they came to land in Cornwall, and soon after went to King Alfred. They were thus named: Dubslane,
and Macbeth, and Maelinmun. And Swinney, the best teacher that was among the Scots, departed this life.
And the same year after Easter, about the gangdays or before, appeared the star that men in bookLatin call
"cometa": some men say that in English it may be termed "hairy star"; for that there standeth off from it a
long gleam of light, whilom on one side, whilom on each.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 39
Page No 42
A.D. 893. This year went the large army, that we before spoke about, back from the eastern district westward
to Bologne; and there were shipped; so that they transported themselves over at one time with their horses
withal. And they came up with two hundred and fifty ships into the mouth of the Limne, which is in
EastKent, at the east end of the vast wood that we call Andred. This wood is in length, east and west, one
hundred and twenty miles, or longer, and thirty miles broad. The river that we before spoke about lieth out of
the weald. On this river they towed up their ships as far as the weald, four miles from the mouth outwards;
and there destroyed a fort within the fen, whereon sat a few churls, and which was hastily wrought. Soon
after this came Hasten up with eighty ships into the mouth of the Thames, and wrought him there a work at
Milton, and the other army at Appledore.
A.D. 894. This year, that was about twelve months after they had wrought a work in the eastern district, the
Northumbrians and EastAngles had given oaths to King Alfred, and the EastAngles six hostages;
nevertheless, contrary to the truce, as oft as the other plunderers went out with all their army, then went they
also, either with them, or in a separate division. Upon this King Alfred gathered his army, and advanced, so
that he encamped between the two armies at the highest point he could find defended by wood and by water,
that he might reach either, if they would seek any field. Then went they forth in quest of the wealds, in troops
and companies, wheresoever the country was defenceless. But they were also sought after most days by other
companies, either by day or by night, both from the army and also from the towns. The king had divided his
army into two parts; so that they were always half at home, half out; besides the men that should maintain the
towns. The army came not all out of their stations more than twice; once, when they first came to land, ere
the forces were collected, and again, when they wished to depart from their stations. They had now seized
much booty, and would ferry it northward over Thames into Essex, to meet their ships. But the army rode
before them, fought with them at Farnham, routed their forces, and there arrested the booty. And they flew
over Thames without any ford, then up by the Colne on an island. Then the king's forces beset them without
as long as they had food; but they had their time set, and their meat noted. And the king was advancing
thitherwards on his march with the division that accompanied him. But while he was advancing thitherwards,
the other force was returning homewards. The Danes, however, still remained behind; for their king was
wounded in the fight, so that they could not carry him. Then collected together those that dwell in
Northumbria and EastAnglia about a hundred ships, and went south about; and with some forty more went
north about, and besieged a fort in Devonshire by the north sea; and those who went south about beset Exeter.
When the king heard that, then went he west towards Exeter with all his force, except a very considerable part
of the eastern army, who advanced till they came to London; and there being joined by the citizens and the
reinforcements that came from the west, they went east to Barnfleet. Hasten was there with his gang, who
before were stationed at Milton, and also the main army had come thither, that sat before in the mouth of the
Limne at Appledore. Hasten had formerly constructed that work at Barnfleet, and was then gone out on
plunder, the main army being at home. Then came the king's troops, and routed the enemy, broke down the
work, took all that was therein money, women, and children and brought all to London. And all the ships they
either broke to pieces, or burned, or brought to London or to Rochester. And Hasten's wife and her two sons
they brought to the king, who returned them to him, because one of them was his godson, and the other
Alderman Ethered's. They had adopted them ere Hasten came to Bamfleet; when he had given them hostages
and oaths, and the king had also given him many presents; as he did also then, when he returned the child and
the wife. And as soon as they came to Bamfleet, and the work was built, then plundered he in the same
quarter of his kingdom that Ethered his compeer should have held; and at another time he was plundering in
the same district when his work was destroyed. The king then went westward with the army toward Exeter, as
I before said, and the army had beset the city; but whilst he was gone they went to their ships. Whilst he was
thus busied there with the army, in the west, the marauding parties were both gathered together at Shobury in
Essex, and there built a fortress. Then they both went together up by the Thames, and a great concourse
joined them, both from the EastAngles and from the Northumbrians. They then advanced upward by the
Thames, till they arrived near the Severn. Then they proceeded upward by the Severn. Meanwhile assembled
Alderman Ethered, Alderman Ethelm, Alderman Ethelnoth, and the king's thanes, who were employed at
home at the works, from every town east of the Parret, as well as west of Selwood, and from the parts east
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 40
Page No 43
and also north of the Thames and west of the Severn, and also some part of NorthWales. When they were all
collected together, they overtook the rear of the enemy at Buttington on the banks of the Severn, and there
beset them without on each side in a fortress. When they had sat there many weeks on both sides of the water,
and the king meanwhile was in Devonshire westward with the naval force, then were the enemy weighed
down with famine. They had devoured the greater part of their horses; and the rest had perished with hunger.
Then went they out to the men that sat on the eastern side of the river, and fought with them; but the
Christians had the victory. And there Ordhelm, the king's thane, was slain; and also many other king's thanes;
and of the Danes there were many slain, and that part of them that came away escaped only by flight. As soon
as they came into Essex to their fortress, and to their ships, then gathered the remnant again in EastAnglia
and from the Northumbrians a great force before winter, and having committed their wives and their ships
and their booty to the EastAngles, they marched on the stretch by day and night, till they arrived at a
western city in Wirheal that is called Chester. There the army could not overtake them ere they arrived within
the work: they beset the work though, without, some two days, took all the cattle that was thereabout, slew
the men whom they could overtake without the work, and all the corn they either burned or consumed with
their horses every evening. That was about a twelvemonth since they first came hither over sea.
A.D. 895. Soon after that, in this year, went the army from Wirheal into NorthWales; for they could not
remain there, because they were stripped both of the cattle and the corn that they had acquired by plunder.
When they went again out of North Wales with the booty they had acquired there, they marched over
Northumberland and EastAnglia, so that the king's army could not reach them till they came into Essex
eastward, on an island that is out at sea, called Mersey. And as the army returned homeward that had beset
Exeter, they went up plundering in Sussex nigh Chichester; but the townsmen put them to flight, and slew
many hundreds of them, and took some of their ships. Then, in the same year, before winter, the Danes, who
abode in Mersey, towed their ships up on the Thames, and thence up the Lea. That was about two years after
that they came hither over sea.
A.D. 896. This same year wrought the aforesaid army a work by the Lea, twenty miles above the city of
London. Then. in the summer of this year, went a large party of the citizens. and also of other folk, and made
an attack on the work of the Danes; but they were there routed, and some four of the king's thanes were slain.
In the harvest afterward the king encamped close to the city, whilst they reaped their corn, that the Danes
might not deprive them of the crop. Then, some day, rode the king up by the river; and observed a place
where the river might be obstructed, so that they could not bring out their ships. And they did so. They
wrought two works on the two sides of the river. And when they had begun the work, and encamped before
it, then understood the army that they could not bring out their ships. Whereupon they left them, and went
over land, till they came to Quatbridge by Severn; and there wrought a work. Then rode the king's army
westward after the enemy. And the men of London fetched the ships; and all that they could not lead away
they broke up; but all that were worthy of capture they brought into the port of London. And the Danes
procured an asylum for their wives among the EastAngles, ere they went out of the fort. During the winter
they abode at Quatbridge. That was about three years since they came hither over sea into the mouth of the
Limne.
A.D. 897. In the summer of this year went the army, some into EastAnglia, and some into Northumbria; and
those that were penniless got themselves ships, and went south over sea to the Seine. The enemy had not,
thank God. entirely destroyed the English nation; but they were much more weakened in these three years by
the disease of cattle, and most of all of men; so that many of the mightiest of the king's thanes. that were in
the land, died within the three years. Of these. one was Swithulf Bishop of Rochester, Ceolmund alderman in
Kent, Bertulf alderman in Essex, Wulfred alderman in Hampshire, Elhard Bishop of Dorchester, Eadulf a
king's thane in Sussex, Bernuff governor of Winchester, and Egulf the king's horsethane; and many also
with them; though I have named only the men of the highest rank. This same year the plunderers in
EastAnglia and Northumbria greatly harassed the land of the WestSaxons by piracies on the southern
coast, but most of all by the esks which they built many years before. Then King Alfred gave orders for
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 41
Page No 44
building long ships against the esks, which were fullnigh twice as long as the others. Some had sixty oars,
some more; and they were both swifter and steadier, and also higher than the others. They were not shaped
either after the Frisian or the Danish model, but so as he himself thought that they might be most serviceable.
Then, at a certain turn of this same year, came six of their ships to the Isle of Wight; and going into
Devonshire, they did much mischief both there and everywhere on the seacoast. Then commanded the king
his men to go out against them with nine of the new ships, and prevent their escape by the mouth of the river
to the outer sea. Then came they out against them with three ships, and three others were standing upwards
above the mouth on dry land: for the men were gone off upon shore. Of the first three ships they took two at
the mouth outwards, and slew the men; the third veered off, but all the men were slain except five; and they
too were severely wounded. Then came onward those who manned the other ships, which were also very
uneasily situated. Three were stationed on that side of the deep where the Danish ships were aground, whilst
the others were all on the opposite side; so that none of them could join the rest; for the water had ebbed
many furlongs from them. Then went the Danes from their three ships to those other three that were on their
side, beebbed; and there they then fought. There were slain Lucomon, the king's reve, and Wulfheard, a
Frieslander; Ebb, a Frieslander, and Ethelere, a Frieslander; and Ethelferth, the king's neatherd; and of all
the men, Frieslanders and English, sixtytwo; of the Danes a hundred and twenty. The tide, however, reached
the Danish ships ere the Christians could shove theirs out; whereupon they rowed them out; but they were so
crippled, that they could not row them beyond the coast of Sussex: there two of them the sea drove ashore;
and the crew were led to Winchester to the king, who ordered them to be hanged. The men who escaped in
the single ship came to EastAnglia, severely wounded. This same year were lost no less than twenty ships,
and the men withal, on the southern coast. Wulfric, the king's horsethane, who was also viceroy of Wales,
died the same year.
A.D. 898. This year died Ethelm, alderman of Wiltshire, nine nights before midsummer; and Heahstan, who
was Bishop of London.
A.D. 901. This year died ALFRED, the son of Ethelwulf, six nights before the mass of All Saints. He was
king over all the English nation, except that part that was under the power of the Danes. He held the
government one year and a half less than thirty winters; and then Edward his son took to the government.
Then Prince Ethelwald, the son of his paternal uncle, rode against the towns of Winburn and of Twineham,
without leave of the king and his council. Then rode the king with his army; so that he encamped the same
night at Badbury near Winburn; and Ethelwald remained within the town with the men that were under him,
and had all the gates shut upon him, saying, that he would either there live or there die. But in the meantime
he stole away in the night, and sought the army in Northumberland. The king gave orders to ride after him;
but they were not able to overtake him. The Danes, however, received him as their king. They then rode after
the wife that Ethelwald had taken without the king's leave, and against the command of the bishops; for she
was formerly consecrated a nun. In this year also died Ethered, who was alderman of Devonshire, four weeks
before King Alfred.
A.D. 902. This year was the great fight at the Holme (39) between the men of Kent and the Danes.
((A.D. 902. This year Elswitha died.))
A.D. 903. This year died Alderman Ethelwulf, the brother of Elhswitha, mother of King Edward; and
Virgilius abbot of the Scots; and Grimbald the masspriest; on the eighth day of July. This same year was
consecrated the new minster at Winchester, on St. Judoc's advent.
A.D. 904. This year came Ethelwald hither over sea with all the fleet that he could get, and he was submitted
to in Essex. This year the moon was eclipsed.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 42
Page No 45
A.D. 905. This year Ethelwald enticed the army in EastAnglia to rebellion; so that they overran all the land
of Mercia, until they came to Cricklade, where they forded the Thames; and having seized, either in Bradon
or thereabout, all that they could lay their hands upon, they went homeward again. King Edward went after,
as soon as he could gather his army, and overran all their land between the foss and the Ouse quite to the fens
northward. Then being desirous of returning thence, he issued an order through the whole army, that they
should all go out at once. But the Kentish men remained behind, contrary to his order, though he had sent
seven messengers to them. Whereupon the army surrounded them, and there they fought. There fell
Aldermen Siwulf and Sigelm; Eadwold, the king's thane; Abbot Kenwulf; Sigebriht, the son of Siwulf;
Eadwald, the son of Acca; and many also with them; though I have named the most considerable. On the
Danish side were slain Eohric their king, and Prince Ethelwald, who had enticed them to the war. Byrtsige,
the son of Prince Brihtnoth; Governor Ysop; Governor Oskytel; and very many also with them that we now
cannot name. And there was on either hand much slaughter made; but of the Danes there were more slain,
though they remained masters of the field. Ealswitha died this same year; and a comet appeared on the
thirteenth day before the calends of November.
((A.D. 906. This year King Edward, from necessity, concluded a peace both with the army of EastAnglia
and of Northhumbria.))
A.D. 907. This year died Alfred, who was governor of Bath. The same year was concluded the peace at
Hitchingford, as King Edward decreed, both with the Danes of EastAnglia, and those of Northumberland;
and Chester was rebuilt.
A.D. 909. This year died Denulf, who was Bishop of Winchester; and the body of St. Oswald was translated
from Bardney into Mercia.
A.D. 910. This year Frithestan took to the bishopric of Winchester; and Asser died soon after, who was
Bishop o[ Sherborne. The same year King Edward sent an army both from Wessex and Mercia, which very
much harassed the northern army by their attacks on men and property of every kind. They slew many of the
Danes, and remained in the country five weeks. This year the Angles and the Danes fought at Tootenhall; and
the Angles had the victory. The same year Ethelfleda built the fortress at Bramsbury.
((A.D. 910. This year the army of the Angles and of the Danes fought at Tootenhall. And Ethelred, ealdor of
the Mercians, died; and King Edward took possession of London, and of Oxford, and of all the lands which
owed obedience thereto. And a great fleet came hither from the south, from the Lidwiccas (Brittany), and
greatly ravaged by the Severn; but they were, afterwards, almost all perished.))
A.D. 911. This year the army in Northumberland broke the truce, and despised every right that Edward and
his son demanded of them; and plundered the land of the Mercians. The king had gathered together about a
hundred ships, and was then in Kent while the ships were sailing along sea by the southeast to meet him.
The army therefore supposed that the greatest part of his force was in the ships, and that they might go,
without being attacked, where that ever they would. When the king learned on enquiry that they were gone
out on plunder, he sent his army both from Wessex and Mercia; and they came up with the rear of the enemy
as he was on his way homeward, and there fought with him and put him to flight, and slew many thousands
of his men. There fell King Eowils, and King Healfden; Earls Ohter and Scurf; Governors Agmund, Othulf,
and Benesing; Anlaf the Swarthy, and Governor Thunferth; Osferth the collector, and Governor Guthferth.
((A.D. 911. Then the next year after this died Ethelred, lord of the Mercians.))
A.D. 912. This year died Ethered, alderman of Mercia; and King Edward took to London, and to Oxford, and
to all the lands that thereunto belonged. This year also came Ethelfleda, lady of the Mercians, on the holy eve
called the invention of the holy cross, to Shergate, and built the fortress there, and the same year that at
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 43
Page No 46
Bridgenorth.
A.D. 913. This year, about Martinmas, King Edward had the northern fortress built at Hertford, betwixt the
Memer, and the Benwic, and the Lea. After this, in the summer, betwixt gang days and midsummer, went
King Edward with some of his force into Essex, to Maldon; and encamped there the while that men built and
fortified the town of Witham. And many of the people submitted to him, who were before under the power of
the Danes. And some of his force, meanwhile, built the fortress at Hertford on the south side of the Lea. This
year by the permission of God went Ethelfleda, lady of Mercia, with all the Mercians to Tamworth; and built
the fort there in the forepart of the summer; and before Lammas that at Stafford: in the next year that at
Eddesbury, in the beginning of the summer; and the same year, late in the autumn, that at Warwick. Then in
the following year was built, after midwinter, that at Chirbury and that at Warburton; and the same year
before midwinter that at Runkorn.
((A.D. 915. This year was Warwick built.))
A.D. 916. This year was the innocent Abbot Egbert slain, before midsummer, on the sixteenth day before the
calends of July. The same day was the feast of St. Ciricius the martyr, with his companions. And within three
nights sent Ethelfleda an army into Wales, and stormed Brecknock; and there took the king's wife, with some
four and thirty others.
A.D. 917. This year rode the army, after Easter, out of Northampton and Leicester; and having broken the
truce they slew many men at Hookerton and thereabout. Then, very soon after this, as the others came home,
they found other troops that were riding out against Leighton. But the inhabitants were aware of it; and
having fought with them they put them into full flight; and arrested all that they had taken, and also of their
horses and of their weapons a good deal.
A.D. 918. This year came a great naval armament over hither south from the Lidwiccians; (40) and two earls
with it, Ohter and Rhoald. They went then west about, till they entered the mouth of the Severn; and
plundered in NorthWales everywhere by the sea, where it then suited them; and took Camlac the bishop in
Archenfield, and led him with them to their ships; whom King Edward afterwards released for forty pounds.
After this went the army all up; and would proceed yet on plunder against Archenfield; but the men of
Hertford met them, and of Glocester, and of the nighest towns; and fought with them, and put them to flight;
and they slew the Earl Rhoald, and the brother of Ohter the other earl, and many of the army. And they drove
them into a park; and beset them there without, until they gave them hostages, that they would depart from
the realm of King Edward. And the king had contrived that a guard should be set against them on the south
side of Severnmouth; west from Wales, eastward to the mouth of the Avon; so that they durst nowhere seek
that land on that side. Nevertheless, they eluded them at night, by stealing up twice; at one time to the east of
Watchet, and at another time at Porlock. There was a great slaughter each time; so that few of them came
away, except those only who swam out to the ships. Then sat they outward on an island, called the Flat
holms; till they were very short of meat, and many men died of hunger, because they could not reach any
meat. Thence went they to Dimmet, and then out to Ireland. This was in harvest. After this, in the same year,
before Martinmas, went King Edward to Buckingham with his army, and sat there four weeks, during which
he built the two forts on either side of the water, ere he departed thence. And Earl Thurkytel sought him for
his lord; and all the captains, and almost all the first men that belonged to Bedford; and also many of those
that belonged to Northampton. This year Ethelfleda, lady of the Mercians, with the help of God, before
Laminas, conquered the town called Derby, with all that thereto belonged; and there were also slain four of
her thanes, that were most dear to her, within the gates.
((A.D. 918. But very shortly after they had become so, she died at Tamworth, twelve days before
midsummer, the eighth year of her having rule and right lordship over the Mercians; and her body lies at
Gloucester, within the east porch of St. Peter's church.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part II 44
Page No 47
A.D. 919. This year King Edward went with his army to Bedford, before Martinmas, and conquered the
town; and almost all the burgesses, who obeyed him before, returned to him; and he sat there four weeks, and
ordered the town to be repaired on the south side of the water, ere he departed thence.
((A.D. 919. This year also the daughter of Ethelred, lord of the Mercians, was deprived of all dominion over
the Mercians, and carried into Wessex, three weeks before midwinter; she was called Elfwina.))
Part III
A.D. 920. This year, before midsummer, went King Edward to Maldon; and repaired and fortified the town,
ere he departed thence. And the same year went Earl Thurkytel over sea to Frankland with the men who
would adhere to him, under the protection and assistance of King Edward. This year Ethelfleda got into her
power, with God's assistance, in the early part of the year, without loss, the town of Leicester; and the greater
part of the army that belonged thereto submitted to her. And the Yorkists had also promised and confirmed,
some by agreement and some with oaths, that they would be in her interest. But very soon after they had done
this, she departed, twelve nights before midsummer, at Tamworth, the eighth year that she was holding the
government of the Mercians with right dominion; and her body lieth at Glocester, in the east porch of St.
Peter's church. This year also was the daughter of Ethered, lord of the Mercians, deprived of all authority
over the Mercians, and led into Wessex, three weeks before midwinter. Her name was Healfwina.
A.D. 921. This year, before Easter, King Edward ordered his men to go to the town of Towcester, and to
rebuild it. Then again, after that, in the same year, during the gangdays, he ordered the town of Wigmore to
be repaired. The same summer, betwixt Lammas and midsummer, the army broke their parole from
Northampton and from Leicester; and went thence northward to Towcester, and fought against the town all
day, and thought that they should break into it; but the people that were therein defended it, till more aid
came to them; and the enemy then abandoned the town, and went away. Then again, very soon after this, they
went out at night for plunder, and came upon men unaware, and seized not a little, both in men and cattle,
betwixt Burnhamwood and Aylesbury. At the same time went the army from Huntington and EastAnglia,
and constructed that work at Ternsford; which they inhabited and fortified; and abandoned the other at
Huntingdon; and thought that they should thence oft with war and contention recover a good deal of this land.
Thence they advanced till they came to Bedford; where the men who were within came out against them, and
fought with them, and put them to flight, and slew a good number of them. Then again, after this, a great
army yet collected itself from EastAnglia and from Mercia, and went to the town of Wigmore; which they
besieged without, and fought against long in the day; and took the cattle about it; but the men defended the
town, who were within; and the enemy left the town, and went away. After this, the same summer, a large
force collected itself in King Edward's dominions, from the nighest towns that could go thither, and went to
Temsford; and they beset the town, and fought thereon; until they broke into it, and slew the king, and Earl
Toglos, and Earl Mann his son, and his brother, and all them that were therein, and who were resolved to
defend it; and they took the others, and all that was therein. After this, a great force collected soon in harvest,
from Kent, from Surrey, from Essex, and everywhere from the nighest towns; and went to Colchester, and
beset the town, and fought thereon till they took it, and slew all the people, and seized all that was therein;
except those men who escaped therefrom over the wall. After this again, this same harvest, a great army
collected itself from EastAnglia, both of the land forces and of the pirates, which they had enticed to their
assistance, and thought that they should wreak their vengeance. They went to Maldon, and beset the town,
and fought thereon, until more aid came to the townsmen from without to help. The enemy then abandoned
the town, and went from it. And the men went after, out of the town, and also those that came from without to
their aid; and put the army to flight, and slew many hundreds of them, both of the pirates and of the others.
Soon after this, the same harvest, went King Edward with the WestSaxon army to Passham; and sat there
the while that men fortified the town of Towcester with a stone wall. And there returned to him Earl
Thurferth, and the captains, and all the army that belonged to Northampton northward to the Welland, and
sought him for their lord and protector. When this division of the army went home, then went another out,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 45
Page No 48
and marched to the town of Huntingdon; and repaired and renewed it, where it was broken down before, by
command of King Edward. And all the people of the country that were left submitted to King Edward, and
sought his peace and protection. After this, the same year, before Martinmas, went King Edward with the
WestSaxon army to Colchester; and repaired and renewed the town, where it was broken down before. And
much people turned to him. both in East Anglia and in Essex, that were before under the power of the
Danes. And all the army in EastAnglia swore union with him; that they would all that he would, and would
protect all that he protected, either by sea or land. And the army that belonged to Cambridge chose him
separately for their lord and protector, and confirmed the same with oaths, as he had advised. This year King
Edward repaired the town of Gladmouth; and the same year King Sihtric slew Neil his brother.
A.D. 922. This year, betwixt gangdays and midsummer, went King Edward with his army to Stamford, and
ordered the town to be fortified on the south side of the river. And all the people that belonged to the northern
town submitted to him, and sought him for their lord. It was whilst he was tarrying there, that Ethelfleda his
sister died at Tamworth, twelve nights before midsummer. Then rode he to the borough of Tamworth; and all
the population in Mercia turned to him, who before were subject to Ethelfleda. And the kings in
NorthWales, Howel, and Cledauc, and Jothwel, and all the people of NorthWales, sought him for their
lord. Then went he thence to Nottingham, and secured that borough, and ordered it to be repaired, and
manned both with English and with Danes. And all the population turned to him, that was settled in Mercia,
both Danish and English.
A.D. 923. This year went King Edward with an army, late in the harvest, to Thelwall; and ordered the
borough to be repaired, and inhabited, and manned. And he ordered another army also from the population of
Mercia, the while he sat there to go to Manchester in Northumbria, to repair and to man it. This year died
Archbishop Plegmund; and King Reynold won York.
A.D. 924. This year, before midsummer, went King Edward with an army to Nottingham; and ordered the
town to be repaired on the south side of the river, opposite the other, and the bridge over the Trent betwixt the
two towns. Thence he went to Bakewell in Peakland; and ordered a fort to be built as near as possible to it,
and manned. And the King of Scotland, with all his people, chose him as father and lord; as did Reynold, and
the son of Eadulf, and all that dwell in Northumbria, both English and Danish, both Northmen and others;
also the king of the Strathclydwallians, and all his people.
((A.D. 924. This year Edward was chosen for father and for lord by the king of the Scots, and by the Scots,
and King Reginald, and by all the Northhumbrians, and also the king of the Strathclyde Britons, and by all
the Strathclyde Britons.))
((A.D. 924. This year King Edward died among the Mercians at Farndon; and very shortly, about sixteen
days after this, Elward his son died at Oxford; and their bodies lie at Winchester. And Athelstan was chosen
king by the Mercians, and consecrated at Kingston. And he gave his sister to Ofsae (Otho), son of the king of
the OldSaxons.))
A.D. 925. This year died King Edward at Farndon in Mercia; and Elward his son died very soon after this, in
Oxford. Their bodies lie at Winchester. And Athelstan was chosen king in Mercia, and consecrated at
Kingston. He gave his sister to Otho, son of the king of the OldSaxons. St. Dunstan was now born; and
Wulfhelm took to the archbishopric in Canterbury. This year King Athelstan and Sihtric king of the
Northumbrians came together at Tamworth, the sixth day before the calends of February, and Athelstan gave
away his sister to him.
((A.D. 925. This year Bishop Wulfhelm was consecrated. And that same year King Edward died.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 46
Page No 49
A.D. 926. This year appeared fiery lights in the northern part of the firmament; and Sihtric departed; and
King Athelstan took to the kingdom of Northumbria, and governed all the kings that were in this island:
First, Howel, King of WestWales; and Constantine, King of the Scots; and Owen, King of Monmouth; and
Aldred, the son of Eadulf, of Bamburgh. And with covenants and oaths they ratified their agreement in the
place called Emmet, on the fourth day before the ides of July; and renounced all idolatry, and afterwards
returned in peace.
A.D. 927. This year King Athelstan expelled King Guthfrith; and Archbishop Wulfhelm went to Rome.
A.D. 928. William took to Normandy, and held it fifteen years.
((A.D. 931. This year died Frithstan, Bishop of Winchester, and Brinstan was blessed in his place.))
A.D. 932. This year Burnstan was invested Bishop of Winchester on the fourth day before the calends of
June; and he held the bishopric two years and a half.
A.D. 933. This year died Bishop Frithestan; and Edwin the atheling was drowned in the sea.
A.D. 934. This year went King Athelstan into Scotland, both with a landforce and a naval armament, and
laid waste a great part of it; and Bishop Burnstan died at Winchester at the feast of All Saints.
A.D. 935. This year Bishop Elfheah took to the bishopric of Winchester.
((A.D. 937. This year King Athelstan and Edmund his brother led a force to Brumby, and there fought against
Anlaf; and, Christ helping, had the victory: and they there slew five kings and seven earls.))
A.D. 938. Here Athelstan king, of earls the lord, rewarder of heroes, and his brother eke, Edmund atheling,
elder of ancient race, slew in the fight, with the edge of their swords, the foe at Brumby! The sons of Edward
their boardwalls clove, and hewed their banners, with the wrecks of their hammers. So were they taught by
kindred zeal, that they at camp oft 'gainst any robber their land should defend, their hoards and homes.
Pursuing fell the Scottish clans; the men of the fleet in numbers fell; 'midst the din of the field the warrior
swate. Since the sun was up in morningtide, gigantic light! glad over grounds, God's candle bright, eternal
Lord! 'till the noble creature sat in the western main: there lay many of the Northern heroes under a
shower of arrows, shot over shields; and Scotland's boast, a Scythian race, the mighty seed of Mars! With
chosen troops, throughout the day, the WestSaxons fierce press'd on the loathed bands; hew'd down the
fugitives, and scatter'd the rear, with strong millsharpen'd blades, The Mercians too the hard handplay
spared not to any of those that with Anlaf over the briny deep in the ship's bosom sought this land for the
hardy fight. Five kings lay on the field of battle, in bloom of youth, pierced with swords. So seven eke of the
earls of Anlaf; and of the ship'screw unnumber'd crowds. There was dispersed the little band of hardy Scots,
the dread of northern hordes; urged to the noisy deep by unrelenting fate! The king of the fleet with his
slender craft escaped with his life on the felon flood; and so too Constantine, the valiant chief, returned to
the north in hasty flight. The hoary Hildrinc cared not to boast among his kindred. Here was his remnant of
relations and friends slain with the sword in the crowded fight. His son too he left on the field of battle,
mangled with wounds, young at the fight. The fairhair'd youth had no reason to boast of the slaughtering
strife. Nor old Inwood and Anlaf the more with the wrecks of their army could laugh and say, that they on the
field of stern command better workmen were, in the conflict of banners, the clash of spears, the meeting of
heroes, and the rustling of weapons, which they on the field of slaughter played with the sons of Edward. The
northmen sail'd in their nailed ships, a dreary remnant, on the roaring sea; over deep water Dublin they
sought, and Ireland's shores, in great disgrace. Such then the brothers both together king and atheling, sought
their country, WestSaxon land, in right triumphant. They left behind them raw to devour, the sallow kite, the
swarthy raven with horny nib, and the hoarse vultur, with the eagle swift to consume his prey; the greedy
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 47
Page No 50
goshawk, and that grey beast the wolf of the weald. No slaughter yet was greater made e'er in this island, of
people slain, before this same, with the edge of the sword; as the books inform us of the old historians; since
hither came from the eastern shores the Angles and Saxons, over the broad sea, and Britain sought, fierce
battlesmiths, o'ercame the Welsh, most valiant earls, and gained the land.
A.D. 941. This year King Athelstan died in Glocester, on the sixth day before the calends of November, about
fortyone winters, bating one night, from the time when King Alfred died. And Edmund Atheling took to the
kingdom. He was then eighteen years old. King Athelstan reigned fourteen years and ten weeks. This year the
Northumbrians abandoned their allegiance, and chose Anlaf of Ireland for their king.
((A.D. 941. This year King Edmund received King Anlaf at baptism; and that same year, a good long space
after, he received King Reginald at the bishop's hands.))
A.D. 942. Here Edmund king, of Angles lord, protector of friends, author and framer of direful deeds. o'erran
with speed the Mercian land. whete'er the course of Whitwellspring, or Humber deep, The broad
brimstream, divides five towns. Leicester and Lincoln. Nottingham and Stamford, and Derby eke. In
thraldom long to Norman Danes they bowed through need, and dragged the chains of heathen men; till, to his
glory, great Edward's heir, Edmund the king, refuge of warriors, their fetters broke.
A.D. 943. This year Anlaf stormed Tamworth; and much slaughter was made on either hand; but the Danes
had the victory, and led away with them much plunder. There was Wulfrun taken, in the spoiling of the town.
This year King Edmund beset King Anlaf and Archbishop Wulfstan in Leicester; and he might have
conquered them, were it not that they burst out of the town in the night. After this Anlaf obtained the
friendship of King Edmund, and King Edmund then received King Anlaf in baptism; and he made him royal
presents. And the same year, after some interval, he received King Reynold at episcopal hands. This year also
died King Anlaf.
A.D. 944. This year King Edmund reduced all the land of the Northumbrians to his dominion, and expelled
two kings, Anlaf the son of Sihtric, and Reynold the son of Guthferth.
A.D. 945. This year King Edmund overran all Cumberland; and let it all to Malcolm king of the Scots, on the
condition that he became his ally, both by sea and land.
A.D. 946. This year King Edmund died, on St. Augustine's mass day. That was widely known, how he ended
his days: that Leof stabbed him at Pucklechurch. And Ethelfleda of Damerham, daughter of Alderman
Elgar, was then his queen. And he reigned six years and a half: and then succeeded to the kingdom Edred
Atheling his brother, who soon after reduced all the land of the Northumbrians to his dominion; and the Scots
gave him oaths, that they would do all that he desired.
A.D. 947. This year came King Edred to Tadden'scliff; and there Archbishop Wulfstan and all the council of
the Northumbrians bound themselves to an allegiance with the king. And within a little space they abandoned
all, both allegiance and oaths.
A.D. 948. This year King Edred overran all Northumberland; because they had taken Eric for their king; and
in the pursuit of plunder was that large minster at Rippon set on fire, which St. Wilferth built. As the king
returned homeward, he overtook the enemy at York; but his main army was behind at Chesterford. There was
great slaughter made; and the king was so wroth, that he would fain return with his force, and lay waste the
land withal; but when the council of the Northumbrians understood that, they then abandoned Eric, and
compromised the deed with King Edred.
A.D. 949. This year came Anlaf Curran to the land of the Northumbrians.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 48
Page No 51
A.D. 951. This year died Elfeah, Bishop of Winchester, on St. Gregory's mass day.
A.D. 952. This year the Northumbrians expelled King Anlaf, and received Eric the son of Harold. This year
also King Edred ordered Archbishop Wulfstan to be brought into prison at Jedburgh; because he was oft
bewrayed before the king: and the same year the king ordered a great slaughter to be made in the town of
Thetford, in revenge of the abbot, whom they had formerly slain.
A.D. 954. This year the Northumbrians expelled Eric; and King Edred took to the government of the
Northumbrians. This year also Archbishop Wulfstan received a bishopric again at Dorchester.
A.D. 955. This year died King Edred, on St. Clement's mass day, at Frome.(41) He reigned nine years and a
half; and he rests in the old minster. Then succeeded Edwy, the son of King Edmund, to the government of
the WestSaxons; and Edgar Atheling, his brother, succeeded to the government of the Mercians. They were
the sons of King Edmund and of St. Elfgiva.
((A.D. 955. And Edwy succeeded to the kingdom of the West Saxons, and Edgar his brother succeeded to
the kingdom of the Mercians: and they were the sons of King Edmund and of S. Elfgiva.))
A.D. 956. This year died Wulfstan, Archbishop of York, on the seventeenth day before the calends of
January; and he was buried at Oundle; and in the same year was Abbot Dunstan driven out of this land over
sea.
A.D. 958. This year Archbishop Oda separated King Edwy and Elfgiva; because they were too nearly related.
A.D. 959. This year died King Edwy, on the calends of October; and Edgar his brother took to the
government of the WestSaxons, Mercians, and Northumbrians. He was then sixteen years old. It was in this
year he sent after St. Dunstan, and gave him the bishopric of Worcester; and afterwards the bishopric of
London. In his days it prosper'd well; and God him gave, that he dwelt in peace the while that he lived.
Whate'er he did, whate'er he plan'd, he earn'd his thrift. He also rear'd God's glory wide, and God's law lov'd,
with peace to man, above the kings that went before in man's remembrance. God so him sped, that kings and
earls to all his claims submissive bow'd; and to his will without a blow he wielded all as pleased himself.
Esteem'd he was both far and wide in distant lands; because he prized the name of God, and God's law traced,
God's glory rear'd, both far and wide, on every side. Wisely he sought in council oft his people's good, before
his God, before the world. One misdeed he did, too much however, that foreign tastes he loved too much; and
heathen modes into this land he brought too fast; outlandish men hither enticed; and to this earth attracted
crowds of vicious men. But God him grant, that his good deeds be weightier far than his misdeeds, to his
soul's redemption on the judgmentday.
A.D. 961. This year departed Odo, the good archbishop, and St. Dunstan took to the archbishopric. This year
also died Elfgar, a relative of the king, in Devonshire; and his body lies at Wilton: and King Sifferth killed
himself; and his body lies at Wimborn. This year there was a very great pestilence; when the great fever was
in London; and St. Paul's minster was consumed with fire, and in the same year was afterwards restored. In
this year Athelmod. the masspriest, went to Rome, and there died on the eighteenth before the calends of
September.
A.D. 963. This year died Wulfstan, the deacon, on Childermass day; (42) and afterwards died Gyric, the
masspriest. In the same year took Abbot Athelwold to the bishopric of Winchester; and he was consecrated
on the vigil of St. Andrew, which happened on a Sunday. On the second year after he was consecrated, he
made many minsters; and drove out the clerks (43) from the bishopric, because they would hold no rule, and
set monks therein. He made there two abbacies; one of monks, another of nuns. That was all within
Winchester. Then came he afterwards to King Edgar, and requested that he would give him all the minsters
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 49
Page No 52
that heathen men had before destroyed; for that he would renew them. This the king cheerfully granted; and
the bishop came then first to Ely, where St. Etheldritha lies, and ordered the minster to be repaired; which he
gave to a monk of his, whose name was Britnoth, whom he consecrated abbot: and there he set monks to
serve God, where formerly were nuns. He then bought many villages of the king, and made it very rich.
Afterwards came Bishop Athelwold to the minster called Medhamsted, which was formerly ruined by
heathen folk; but he found there nothing but old walls, and wild woods. In the old walls at length he found
hid writings which Abbot Hedda had formerly written; how King Wulfhere and Ethelred his brother had
wrought it, and how they freed it against king and against bishop, and against all worldly service; and how
Pope Agatho confirmed it with his writ, as also Archbishop Deusdedit. He then ordered the minster to be
rebuilt; and set there an abbot, who was called Aldulf; and made monks, where before was nothing. He then
came to the king, and let him look at the writings which before were found; and the king then answered and
said: "I Edgar grant and give today, before God and before Archbishop Dunstan, freedom to St. Peter's
minster at Medhamsted, from king and from bishop; and all the thorps that thereto lie; that is, Eastfield, and
Dodthorp, and Eye, and Paston. And so I free it, that no bishop have any jurisdiction there, but the abbot of
the minster alone. And I give the town called Oundle, with all that thereto lieth, called Eyothundred, with
market and toll; so freely, that neither king, nor bishop, nor earl, nor sheriff, have there any jurisdiction; nor
any man but the abbot alone, and whom he may set thereto. And I give to Christ and St. Peter, and that too
with the advice of Bishop Athelwold, these lands; that is, Barrow, Warmington, Ashton, Kettering,
Castor, Eylesworth, Walton, Witherington, Eye, Thorp, and a minster at Stamford. These lands and al the
others that belong to the minster I bequeath clear; that is, with sack and sock, toll and team, and infangthief;
these privileges and all others bequeath I clear to Christ and St. Peter. And I give the two parts of
Whittleseymere, with waters and with wears and fens; and so through Meerlade along to the water that is
called Nen; and so eastward to Kingsdelf. And I will that there be a market in the town itself, and that no
other be betwixt Stamford and Huntingdon. And I will that thus be given the toll; first, from
Whittleseymere to the king's toll of Normancross hundred; then backward again from Whittleseymere
through Meerlade along to the Nen, and as that river runs to Crowland; and from Crowland to Must, and from
Must to Kingsdelf and to Whittleseymere. And I will that all the freedom, and all the privileges, that my
predecessors gave, should remain; and I write and confirm this with the roodtoken of Christ." (+) Then
answered Dunstan, the Archbishop of Canterbury, and said: "I grant, that all the things that here are given and
spoken, and all the things that thy predecessors and mine have given, shall remain firm; and whosoever
breaketh it, then give I him God's curse, and that of all saints, and of all hooded heads, and mine, unless he
come to repentance. And I give expressly to St. Peter my masshackle, and my stole, and my reef, to serve
Christ." "I Oswald, Archbishop of York, confirm all these words through the holy rood on which Christ was
crucified." (+) "I Bishop Athelwold bless all that maintain this, and I excommunicate all that break it, unless
they come to repentance." Here was Bishop Ellstan, Bishop Athulf, and Abbot Eskwy, and Abbot Osgar,
and Abbot Ethelgar, and Alderman Elfere; .Alderman Ethelwin, Britnoth and Oslac aldermen, and many
other rich men; and all confirmed it and subscribed it with the cross of Christ. (+) This was done in the year
after our Lord's Nativity 972, the sixteenth year of this king. Then bought the Abbot Aldulf lands rich and
many, and much endowed the minster withal; and was there until Oswald, Archbishop of York, was dead;
and then he was chosen to be archbishop. Soon after another abbot was chosen of the same monastery, whose
name was Kenulf, who was afterwards Bishop of Winchester. He first made the wall about the minster, and
gave it then the name of Peterborough, which before was Medhamsted. He was there till he was appointed
Bishop of Winchester, when another abbot was chosen of the same monastery, whose name was Elfsy, who
continued abbot fifty winters afterwards. It was he who took up St. Kyneburga and St. Kyneswitha, that lay at
Castor, and St. Tibba, that lay at Ryhall; and brought them to Peterborough, and offered them all to St. Peter
in one day, and preserved them all the while he was there.
((A.D. 963. This year, by King Edgar, St. Ethelwold was chosen to the bishoprick at Winchester. And the
Archbishop of Canterbury, St. Dunstan, consecrated him bishop on the first Sunday of Advent; that was on
the third before the kalends of December.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 50
Page No 53
A.D. 964. This year drove King Edgar the priests of Winchester out of the old minster, and also out of the
new minster; and from Chertsey; and from Milton; and replaced them with monks. And he appointed
Ethelgar abbot to the new minster, and Ordbert to Chertsey, and Cyneward to Milton.
((A.D. 964. This year were the canons driven out of the Old minster by King Edgar, and also from the
Newminster, and from Chertsey and from Milton; and he appointed thereto monks and abbots: to the
Newminster Ethelgar, to Chertsey Ordbert, to Milton Cyneward.))
A.D. 965. This year King Edgar took Elfrida for his queen, who was daughter of Alderman Ordgar.
A.D. 966. This year Thored, the son of Gunner, plundered Westmorland; and the same year Oslac took to the
aldermanship.
A.D. 969. This year King Edgar ordered all Thanetland to be plundered.
A.D. 970. This year died Archbishop Oskytel; who was first consecrated diocesan bishop at Dorchester, and
afterwards it was by the consent of King Edred and all his council that he was consecrated Archbishop of
York. He was bishop two and twenty winters; and he died on Alhallowmas night, ten nights before
Martinmas, at Thame. Abbot Thurkytel, his relative, carried the bishop's body to Bedford, because he was the
abbot there at that time.
A.D. 971. This year died Edmund Atheling, and his body lies at Rumsey.
((A.D. 972. This year Edgar the etheling was consecrated king at Bath, on Pentecost's massday, on the fifth
before the ides of May, the thirteenth year since he had obtained the kingdom; and he was then one less than
thirty years of age. And soon after that, the king led all his shipforces to Chester; and there came to meet
him six kings, and they all plighted their troth to him, that they would be his fellowworkers by sea and by
land.))
A.D. 973. Here was Edgar, of Angles lord, with courtly pomp hallow'd to king at Akemancester, the ancient
city; whose modern sons, dwelling therein, have named her BATH. Much bliss was there by all enjoyed on
that happy day, named Pentecost by men below. A crowd of priests, a throng of monks, I understand, in
counsel sage, were gather'd there. Then were agone ten hundred winters of number'd years from the birth of
Christ, the lofty king, guardian of light, save that thereto there yet was left of wintertale, as writings say,
seven and twenty. So near had run of the lord of triumphs a thousand years, when this was done. Nine and
twenty hard winters there of irksome deeds had Edmund's son seen in the world, when this took place, and on
the thirtieth was hallow'd king. (43) Soon after this the king led all his marine force to Chester; and there
came to meet him six kings; and they all covenanted with him, that they would be his allies by sea and by
land.
A.D. 975. Here ended his earthly dreams Edgar, of Angles king; chose him other light, serene and lovely,
spurning this frail abode, a life that mortals here call lean he quitted with disdain. July the month, by all
agreed in this our land, whoever were in chronic lore correctly taught; the day the eighth, when Edgar young,
rewarder of heroes, his life his throne resigned. Edward his son, unwaxen child, of earls the prince,
succeeded then to England's throne. Of royal race ten nights before departed hence Cyneward the good
prelate of manners mild. Well known to me in Mercia then, how low on earth God's glory fell on every side:
chaced from the land, his servants fled, their wisdom scorned; much grief to him whose bosom glow'd
with fervent love of great Creation's Lord! Neglected then the God of wonders, victor of victors, monarch of
heaven, his laws by man transgressed! Then too was driv'n Oslac beloved an exile far from his native land
over the rolling waves, over the ganetbath, over the waterthrong, the abode of the whale, fairhair'd
hero, wise and eloquent, of home bereft! Then too was seen, high in the heavens, the star on his station, that
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 51
Page No 54
far and wide wise men call lovers of truth and heav'nly lore "cometa" by name. Widely was spread
God's vengeance then throughout the land, and famine scour'd the hills. May heaven's guardian, the glory of
angels, avert these ills, and give us bliss again; that bliss to all abundance yields from earth's choice fruits,
throughout this happy isle. (45)
((A.D. 975. The eighth before the ides of July. Here Edgar died, ruler of Angles, WestSaxons' joy, and
Mercians' protector. Known was it widely throughout many nations. "Thaet" offspring of Edmund, o'er the
ganet'sbath, honoured far, Kings him widely bowed to the king, as was his due by kind. No fleet was so
daring, nor army so strong, that 'mid the English nation took from him aught, the while that the noble king
ruled on his throne. And this year Edward, Edgar's son, succeeded to the kingdom; and then soon, in the same
year, during harvest, appeared "cometa" the star; and then came in the following year a very great famine,
and very manifold commotions among the English people. In his days, for his youth, God's gainsayers God's
law broke; Eldfere, ealdorman, and others many; and rule monastic quashed, and minsters dissolved, and
monks drove out, and God's servants put down, whom Edgar, king, ordered erewhile the holy bishop
Ethelwold to stablish; and widows they plundered, many times and oft: and many unrighteousnesses, and evil
unjustdeeds arose up afterwards: and ever after that it greatly grew in evil. And at that rime, also, was Oslac
the great earl banished from England.))
A.D. 976. This year was the great famine in England.
A.D. 977. This year was that great council at Kirtlington, (46) after Easter; and there died Bishop Sideman a
sudden death, on the eleventh day before the calends of May. He was Bishop of Devonshire; and he wished
that his restingplace should be at Crediton, his episcopal residence; but King Edward and Archbishop
Dunstan ordered men to carry him to St. Mary's minster that is at Abingdon. And they did so; and he is
moreover honourably buried on the north side in St. Paul's porch.
A.D. 978. This year all the oldest counsellors of England fell at Calne from an upper floor; but the holy
Archbishop Dunstan stood alone upon a beam. Some were dreadfully bruised: and some did not escape with
life. This year was King Edward slain, at eventide, at Corfegate, on the fifteenth day before the calends of
April. And he was buried at Wareham without any royal honour. No worse deed than this was ever done by
the English nation since they first sought the land of Britain. Men murdered him but God has magnified him.
He was in life an earthly king he is now after death a heavenly saint. Him would not his earthly relatives
avenge but his heavenly father has avenged him amply. The earthly homicides would wipe out his
memory from the earth but the avenger above has spread his memory abroad in heaven and in earth.
Those, Who would not before bow to his living body, now bow on their knees to His dead bones. Now we
may conclude, that the wisdom of men, and their meditations, and their counsels, are as nought against the
appointment of God. In this same year succeeded Ethelred Etheling, his brother, to the government; and he
was afterwards very readily, and with great joy to the counsellors of England, consecrated king at Kingston.
In the same year also died Alfwold, who was Bishop of Dorsetshire, and whose body lieth in the minster at
Sherborn.
A.D. 979. In this year was Ethelred consecrated king, on the Sunday fortnight after Easter, at Kingston. And
there were at his consecration two archbishops, and ten diocesan bishops. This same year was seen a bloody
welkin ofttimes in the likeness of fire; and that was most apparent at midnight, and so in misty beams was
shown; but when it began to dawn, then it glided away.
((A.D. 979. This year was King Edward slain at eventide, at Corfegate, on the fifteenth before the kalends
of April, and then was he buried at Wareham, without any kind of kingly honours. There has not been 'mid
Angles a worse deed done than this was, since they first Britainland sought. Men him murdered, but God
him glorified. He was in life an earthly king; he is now after death a heavenly saint. Him would not his
earthly kinsmen avenge, but him hath his heavenly Father greatly avenged. The earthly murderers would his
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 52
Page No 55
memory on earth blot out, but the lofty Avenger hath his memory in the heavens and on earth widespread.
They who would not erewhile to his living body bow down, they now humbly on knees bend to his dead
bones. Now we may understand that men's wisdom and their devices, and their councils, are like nought
'gainst God's resolves. This year Ethelred succeeded to the kingdom; and he was very quickly after that, with
much joy of the English witan, consecrated king at Kingston.))
A.D. 980. In this year was Ethelgar consecrated bishop, on the sixth day before the nones of May, to the
bishopric of Selsey; and in the same year was Southampton plundered by a piratearmy, and most of the
population slain or imprisoned. And the same year was the Isle of Thanet overrun, and the county of Chester
was plundered by the piratearmy of the North. In this year Alderman Alfere fetched the body of the holy
King Edward at Wareham, and carried him with great solemnity to Shaftsbury.
A.D. 981. In this year was St. Petroc'sstow plundered; and in the same year was much harm done
everywhere by the seacoast, both upon Devonshire and Wales. And in the same year died Elfstan, Bishop of
Wiltshire; and his body lieth in the minster at Abingdon; and Wulfgar then succeeded to the bishopric. The
same year died Womare, Abbot of Ghent.
((A.D. 981. This year came first the seven ships, and ravaged Southampton.))
A.D. 982. In this year came up in Dorsetshire three ships of the pirates, and plundered in Portland. The same
year London was burned. In the same year also died two aldermen, Ethelmer in Hampshire, and Edwin in
Sussex. Ethelmer's body lieth in Winchester, at Newminster, and Edwin's in the minster at Abingdon. The
same year died two abbesses in Dorsetshire; Herelufa at Shaftsbury, and Wulfwina at Wareham. The same
year went Otho, emperor of the Romans, into Greece; and there met he a great army of the Saracens, who
came up from the sea, and would have proceeded forthwith to plunder the Christian folk; but the emperor
fought with them. And there was much slaughter made on either side, but the emperor gained the field of
battle. He was there, however, much harassed, ere he returned thence; and as he went homeward, his brother's
son died, who was also called Otho; and he was the son of Leodulf Atheling. This Leodulf was the son of
Otho the Elder and of the daughter of King Edward.
A.D. 983. This year died Alderman Alfere, and Alfric succeeded to the same eldership; and Pope Benedict
also died.
A.D. 984. This year died the benevolent Bishop of Winchester, Athelwold, father of monks; and the
consecration of the following bishop, Elfheah, who by another name was called Godwin, was on the
fourteenth day before the calends of November; and he took his seat on the episcopal bench on the massday
of the two apostles Simon and Jude, at Winchester.
A.D. 985. This year was Alderman Alfric driven out of the land; and in the same year was Edwin consecrated
abbot of the minster at Abingdon.
A.D. 986. This year the king invaded the bishopric of Rochester; and this year came first the great murrain of
cattle in England.
A.D. 987. This year was the port of Watchet plundered.
A.D. 988. This year was Goda, the thane of Devonshire, slain; and a great number with him: and Dunstan, the
holy archbishop, departed this life, and sought a heavenly one. Bishop Ethelgar succeeded him in the
archbishopric; but he lived only a little while after, namely, one year and three months.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 53
Page No 56
A.D. 989. This year died Abbot Edwin, and Abbot Wulfgar succeeded to the abbacy. Siric was this year
invested archbishop, and went afterwards to Rome after his pall.
A.D. 991. This year was Ipswich plundered; and very soon afterwards was Alderman Britnoth (47) slain at
Maidon. In this same year it was resolved that tribute should be given, for the first time, to the Danes, for the
great terror they occasioned by the seacoast. That was first 10,000 pounds. The first who advised this
measure was Archbishop Siric.
A.D. 992. This year the blessed Archbishop Oswald departed this life, and sought a heavenly one; and in the
same year died Alderman Ethelwin. Then the king and all his council resolved, that all the ships that were of
any account should be gathered together at London; and the king committed the lead of the land force to
Alderman Elfric, and Earl Thorod, and Bishop Elfstan, and Bishop Escwy; that they should try if they could
anywhere without entrap the enemy. Then sent Alderman Elfric, and gave warning to the enemy; and on the
night preceding the day of battle he sculked away from the army, to his great disgrace. The enemy then
escaped; except the crew of one ship, who were slain on the spot. Then met the enemy the ships from
EastAnglia, and from London; and there a great slaughter was made, and they took the ship in which was
the alderman, all armed and rigged. Then, after the death of Archbishop Oswald, succeeded Aldulf, Abbot of
Peterborough, to the sees of York and of Worcester; and Kenulf to the abbacy of Peterborough.
((A.D. 992. This year Oswald the blessed archbishop died, and Abbot Eadulf succeeded to York and to
Worcester. And this year the king and all his witan decreed that all the ships which were worth anything
should be gathered together at London, in order that they might try if they could anywhere betrap the army
from without. But Aelfric the ealdorman, one of those in whom the king had most confidence, directed the
army to be warned; and in the night, as they should on the morrow have joined battle, the selfsame Aelfric
fled from the forces; and then the army escaped.))
A.D. 993. This year came Anlaf with three and ninety ships to Staines, which he plundered without, and went
thence to Sandwich. Thence to Ipswich, which he laid waste; and so to Maidon, where Alderman Britnoth
came against him with his force, and fought with him; and there they slew the alderman, and gained the field
of battle; whereupon peace was made with him, and the king received him afterwards at episcopal hands by
the advice of Siric, Bishop of Canterbury, and Elfeah of Winchester. This year was Bamborough destroyed,
and much spoil was there taken. Afterwards came the army to the mouth of the Humber; and there did much
evil both in Lindsey and in Northumbria. Then was collected a great force; but when the armies were to
engage, then the generals first commenced a flight; namely, Frene and Godwin and Frithgist. In this same
year the king ordered Elfgar, son of Alderman Elfric, to be punished with blindness.
((A.D. 993. In this year came Olave with ninetythree ships to Staines, and ravaged there about, and then
went thence to Sandwich, and so thence to Ipswich, and that all overran; and so to Maldon. And there
Britnoth the ealdorman came against them with his forces, and fought against them: and they there slew the
ealdorman, and had possession of the place of carnage. And after that peace was made with them; and him
(Anlaf) the king afterwards received at the bishop's hands, through the instruction of Siric, bishop of the
Kentishmen, and of Aelphege of Winchester.))
A.D. 994. This year died Archbishop Siric: and Elfric, Bishop of Wiltshire, was chosen on Easterday, at
Amesbury, by King Ethelred and all his council. This year came Anlaf and Sweyne to London, on the
Nativity of St. Mary, with four and ninetyships. And they closely besieged the city, and would fain have set
it on fire; but they sustained more harm and evil than they ever supposed that any citizens could inflict on
them. The holy mother of God on that day in her mercy considered the citizens, and ridded them of their
enemies. Thence they advanced, and wrought the greatest evil that ever any army could do, in burning and
plundering and manslaughter, not only on the seacoast in Essex, but in Kent and in Sussex and in
Hampshire. Next they took horse, and rode as wide as they would, and committed unspeakable evil. Then
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 54
Page No 57
resolved the king and his council to send to them, and offer them tribute and provision, on condition that they
desisted from plunder. The terms they accepted; and the whole army came to Southampton, and there fixed
their winter quarters; where they were fed by all the subjects of the West Saxon kingdom. And they gave
them 16,000 pounds in money. Then sent the king; after King Anlaf Bishop Elfeah and Alderman Ethelwerd;
(48) and, hostages being left with the ships, they led Anlaf with great pomp to the king at Andover. And King
Ethelred received him at episcopal hands, and honoured him with royal presents. In return Anlaf promised, as
he also performed, that he never again would come in a hostile manner to England.
A.D. 995. This year appeared the cometstar.
A.D. 996. This year was Elfric consecrated archbishop at Christ church. (49)
A.D. 997. This year went the army about Devonshire into Severn mouth, and equally plundered the people
of Cornwall, NorthWales, (50) and Devon. Then went they up at Watchet, and there much evil wrought in
burning and manslaughter. Afterwards they coasted back about Penwithstert on the south side, and, turning
into the mouth of the Tamer, went up till they came to Liddyford, burning and slaying everything that they
met. Moreover, Ordulf's minster at Tavistock they burned to the ground, and brought to their ships
incalculable plunder. This year Archbishop Elfric went to Rome after his staff.
A.D. 998. This year coasted the army back eastward into the mouth of the Frome, and went up everywhere,
as widely as they would, into Dorsetshire. Often was an army collected against them; but, as soon as they
were about to come together, then were they ever through something or other put to flight, and their enemies
always in the end had the victory. Another time they lay in the Isle of Wight, and fed themselves meanwhile
from Hampshire and Sussex.
A.D. 999. This year came the army about again into the Thames, and went up thence along the Medway to
Rochester; where the Kentish army came against them, and encountered them in a close engagement; but,
alas! they too soon yielded and fled; because they had not the aid that they should have had. The Danes
therefore occupied the field of battle, and, taking horse, they rode as wide as they would, spoiling and
overrunning nearly all WestKent. Then the king with his council determined to proceed against them with
sea and land forces; but as soon as the ships were ready, then arose delay from day to day, which harassed the
miserable crew that lay on board; so that, always, the forwarder it should have been, the later it was, from one
time to another; they still suffered the army of their enemies to increase; the Danes continually
retreated from the seacoast; and they continually pursued them in vain. Thus in the end these expeditions
both by sea and land served no other purpose but to vex the people, to waste their treasure, and to strengthen
their enemies. "
A.D. 1000. This year the king went into Cumberland, and nearly laid waste the whole of it with his army,
whilst his navy sailed about Chester with the design of cooperating with his land forces; but, finding it
impracticable, they ravaged Anglesey. The hostile fleet was this summer turned towards the kingdom of
Richard.
A.D. 1001. This year there was great commotion in England in consequence of an invasion by the Danes,
who spread terror and devastation wheresoever they went, plundering and burning and desolating the country
with such rapidity, that they advanced in one march as far as the town of Alton; where the people of
Hampshire came against them, and fought with them. There was slain Ethelwerd, highsteward of the king,
and Leofric of Whitchurch, and Leofwin, highsteward of the king, and Wulfhere, a bishop's thane, and
Godwin of Worthy, son of Bishop Elfsy; and of all the men who were engaged with them eightyone. Of the
Danes there was slain a much greater number, though they remained in possession of the field of battle.
Thence they proceeded westward, until they came into Devonshire; where Paley came to meet them with the
ships which he was able to collect; for he had shaken off his allegiance to King Ethelred, against all the vows
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 55
Page No 58
of truth and fidelity which he had given him, as well as the presents which the king had bestowed on him in
houses and gold and silver. And they burned Teignton, and also many other goodly towns that we cannot
name; and then peace was there concluded with them. And they proceeded thence towards Exmouth, so that
they marched at once till they came to Pinhoo; where Cole, high steward of the king, and Edsy, reve of the
king, came against them with the army that they could collect. But they were there put to flight, and there
were many slain, and the Danes had possession of the field of battle. And the next morning they burned the
village of Pinhoo, and of Clist, and also many goodly towns that we cannot name. Then they returned
eastward again, till they came to the Isle of Wight. The next morning they burned the town of Waltham, and
many other small towns; soon after which the people treated with them, and they made peace.
((A.D. 1001. This year the army came to Exmouth, and then went up to the town, and there continued
fighting stoutly; but they were very strenuously resisted. Then went they through the land, and did all as was
their wont; destroyed and burnt. Then was collected a vast force of the people of Devon and of the people of
Somerset, and they then came together at Pen. And so soon as they joined battle, then the people gave way:
and there they made great slaughter, and then they rode over the land, and their last incursion was ever worse
than the one before: and then they brought much booty with them to their ships. And thence they went into
the Isle of Wight, and there they roved about, even as they themselves would, and nothing withstood them:
nor any fleet by sea durst meet them; nor land force either, went they ever so far up. Then was it in every
wise a heavy time, because they never ceased from their evil doings.))
A.D. 1002. This year the king and his council agreed that tribute should be given to the fleet, and peace made
with them, with the provision that they should desist from their mischief. Then sent the king to the fleet
Alderman Leofsy, who at the king's word and his council made peace with them, on condition that they
received food and tribute; which they accepted, and a tribute was paid of 24,000 pounds. In the meantime
Alderman Leofsy slew Eafy, highsteward of the king; and the king banished him from the land. Then, in the
same Lent, came the Lady Elfgive Emma, Richard's daughter, to this land. And in the same summer died
Archbishop Eadulf; and also, in the same year the king gave an order to slay all the Danes that were in
England. This was accordingly done on the massday of St. Brice; because it was told the king, that they
would beshrew him of his life, and afterwards all his council, and then have his kingdom without any
resistance.
A.D. 1003. This year was Exeter demolished, through the French churl Hugh, whom the lady had appointed
her steward there. And the army destroyed the town withal, and took there much spoil. In the same year came
the army up into Wiltshire. Then was collected a very great force, from Wiltshire and from Hampshire; which
was soon ready on their march against the enemy: and Alderman Elfric should have led them on; but he
brought forth his old tricks, and as soon as they were so near, that either army looked on the other, then he
pretended sickness, and began to retch, saying he was sick; and so betrayed the people that he should have
led: as it is said, "When the leader is sick the whole army is hindered." When Sweyne saw that they were not
ready, and that they all retreated, then led he his army into Wilton; and they plundered and burned the town.
Then went he to Sarum; and thence back to the sea, where he knew his ships were.
A.D. 1004. This year came Sweyne with his fleet to Norwich, plundering and burning the whole town. Then
Ulfkytel agreed with the council in EastAnglia, that it were better to purchase peace with the enemy, ere
they did too much harm on the land; for that they had come unawares, and he had not had time to gather his
force. Then, under the truce that should have been between them, stole the army up from their ships, and bent
their course to Thetford. When Ulfkytel understood that, then sent he an order to hew the ships in pieces; but
they frustrated his design. Then he gathered his forces, as secretly as he could. The enemy came to Thetford
within three weeks after they had plundered Norwich; and, remaining there one night, they spoiled and
burned the town; but, in the morning, as they were proceeding to their ships, came Ulfkytel with his army,
and said that they must there come to close quarters. And, accordingly, the two armies met together; and
much slaughter was made on both sides. There were many of the veterans of the EastAngles slain; but, if the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 56
Page No 59
main army had been there, the enemy had never returned to their ships. As they said themselves, that they
never met with worse handplay in England than Ulfkytel brought them.
A.D. 1005. This year died Archbishop Elfric; and Bishop Elfeah succeeded him in the archbishopric. This
year was the great famine in England so severe that no man ere remembered such. The fleet this year went
from this land to Denmark, and took but a short respite, before they came again.
A.D. 1006. This year Elfeah was consecrated Archbishop; Bishop Britwald succeeded to the see of Wiltshire;
Wulfgeat was deprived of all his property; (51) Wulfeah and Ufgeat were deprived of sight; Alderman Elfelm
was slain; and Bishop Kenulf (52) departed this life. Then, over midsummer, came the Danish fleet to
Sandwich, and did as they were wont; they barrowed and burned and slew as they went. Then the king
ordered out all the population from Wessex and from Mercia; and they lay out all the harvest under arms
against the enemy; but it availed nothing more than it had often done before. For all this the enemy went
wheresoever they would; and the expedition did the people more harm than either any internal or external
force could do. When winter approached, then went the army home; and the enemy retired after Martinmas to
their quarters in the Isle of Wight, and provided themselves everywhere there with what they wanted. Then,
about midwinter, they went to their ready farm, throughout Hampshire into Berkshire, to Reading. And they
did according to their custom, they lighted their campbeacons as they advanced. Thence they marched to
Wallingford, which they entirely destroyed, and passed one night at Cholsey. They then turned along
Ashdown to Cuckamsleyhill, and there awaited better cheer; for it was often said, that if they sought
Cuckamsley, they would never get to the sea. But they went another way homeward. Then was their army
collected at Kennet; and they came to battle there, and soon put the English force to flight; and afterwards
carried their spoil to the sea. There might the people of Winchester see the rank and iniquitous foe, as they
passed by their gates to the sea, fetching their meat and plunder over an extent of fifty miles from sea. Then
was the king gone over the Thames into Shropshire; and there he fixed his abode during midwinter.
Meanwhile, so great was the fear of the enemy, that no man could think or devise how to drive them from the
land, or hold this territory against them; for they had terribly marked each shire in Wessex with fire and
devastation. Then the king began to consult seriously with his council, what they all thought most advisable
for defending this land, ere it was utterly undone. Then advised the king and his council for the advantage of
all the nation, though they were all loth to do it, that they needs must bribe the enemy with a tribute. The king
then sent to the army, and ordered it to be made known to them, that his desire was, that there should be
peace between them, and that tribute and provision should be given them. And they accepted the terms; and
they were provisioned throughout England.
((A.D. 1006. This year Elphege was consecrated archbishop [of Canterbury].))
A.D. 1007. In this year was the tribute paid to the hostile army; that was, 30,000 pounds. In this year also was
Edric appointed alderman over all the kingdom of the Mercians. This year went Bishop Elfeah to Rome after
his pall.
A.D. 1008. This year bade the king that men should speedily build ships over all England; that is, a man
possessed of three hundred and ten hides to provide on galley or skiff; and a man possessed of eight hides
only, to find a helmet and breastplate (53).
A.D. 1009. This year were the ships ready, that we before spoke about; and there were so many of them as
never were in England before, in any king's days, as books tell us. And they were all transported together to
Sandwich; that they should lie there, and defend this land against any outforce. But we have not yet had the
prosperity and the honour, that the naval armament should be useful to this land, any more than it often
before was. It was at this same time, or a little earlier, that Brihtric, brother of Alderman Edric, bewrayed
Wulnoth, the SouthSaxon knight, father of Earl Godwin, to the king; and he went into exile, and enticed the
navy, till he had with him twenty ships; with which he plundered everywhere by the south coast, and wrought
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 57
Page No 60
every kind of mischief. When it was told the navy that they might easily seize him, if they would look about
them, then took Brihtric with him eighty ships; and thought that he should acquire for himself much
reputation, by getting Wulnoth into his hands alive or dead. But, whilst they were proceeding thitherward,
there came such a wind against them, as no man remembered before; which beat and tossed the ships, and
drove them aground; whereupon Wulnoth soon came, and burned them. When this was known to the
remaining ships, where the king was, how the others fared, it was then as if all were lost. The king went
home, with the aldermen and the nobility; and thus lightly did they forsake the ships; whilst the men that
were in them rowed them back to London. Thus lightly did they suffer the labour of all the people to be in
vain; nor was the terror lessened, as all England hoped. When this naval expedition was thus ended, then
came, soon after Lammas, the formidable army of the enemy, called Thurkill's army, to Sandwich; and soon
they bent their march to Canterbury; which city they would quickly have stormed, had they not rather desired
peace; and all the men of EastKent made peace with the army, and gave them 3,000 pounds for security.
The army soon after that went about till they came to the Isle of Wight; and everywhere in Sussex, and in
Hampshire, and also in Berkshire, they plundered and burned, as THEIR CUSTOM IS. (54) Then ordered the
king to summon out all the population, that men might hold firm against them on every side; but nevertheless
they marched as they pleased. On one occasion the king had begun his march before them, as they proceeded
to their ships, and all the people were ready to fall upon them; but the plan was then frustrated through
Alderman Edric, AS IT EVER IS STILL. Then after Martinmas they went back again to Kent, and chose
their winterquarters on the Thames; obtaining their provisions from Essex, and from the shires that were
next, on both sides of the Thames. And oft they fought against the city of London; but glory be to God, that it
yet standeth firm: and they ever there met with ill fare. Then after midwinter took they an excursion up
through Chiltern, (55) and so to Oxford; which city they burned, and plundered on both sides of the Thames
to their ships. Being forewarned that there was an army gathered against them at London, they went over at
Staines; and thus were they in motion all the winter, and in spring, appeared again in Kent, and repaired their
ships.
A.D. 1010. This year came the aforesaid army, after Easter, into East Anglia; and went up at Ipswich,
marching continually till they came where they understood Ulfcytel was with his army. This was on the day
called the first of the Ascension of our Lord. The EastAngles soon fled. Cambridgeshire stood firm against
them. There was slain Athelstan, the king's relative, and Oswy, and his son, and Wulfric, son of Leofwin, and
Edwy, brother of Efy, and many other good thanes, and a multitude of the people. Thurkytel Myrehead first
began the flight; and the Danes remained masters of the field of slaughter. There were they horsed; and
afterwards took possession of EastAnglia, where they plundered and burned three months; and then
proceeded further into the wild fens, slaying both men and cattle, and burning throughout the fens. Thetford
also they burned, and Cambridge; and afterwards went back southward into the Thames; and the horsemen
rode towards the ships. Then went they westward into Oxfordshire, and thence to Buckinghamshire, and so
along the Ouse till they came to Bedford, and so forth to Temsford, always burning as they went. Then
returned they to their ships with their spoil, which they apportioned to the ships. When the king's army should
have gone out to meet them as they went up, then went they home; and when they were in the east, then was
the army detained in the west; and when they were in the south, then was the army in the north. Then all the
privy council were summoned before the king, to consult how they might defend this country. But, whatever
was advised, it stood not a month; and at length there was not a chief that would collect an army, but each
fled as he could: no shire, moreover, would stand by another. Before the feastday of St. Andrew came the
enemy to Northampton, and soon burned the town, and took as much spoil thereabout as they would; and
then returned over the Thames into Wessex, and so by Canningsmarsh, burning all the way. When they had
gone as far as they would, then came they by midwinter to their ships.
A.D. 1011. This year sent the king and his council to the army, and desired peace; promising them both
tribute and provisions, on condition that they ceased from plunder. They had now overrun EastAnglia [1],
and Essex [2], and Middlesex [3], and Oxfordshire [4], and Cambridgeshire [5], and Hertfordshire [6], and
Buckinghamshire [7], and Bedfordshire [8], and half of Huntingdonshire [9], and much of Northamptonshire
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 58
Page No 61
[10]; and, to the south of the Thames, all Kent, and Sussex, and Hastings, and Surrey, and Berkshire, and
Hampshire, and much of Wiltshire. All these disasters befel us through bad counsels; that they would not
offer tribute in time, or fight with them; but, when they had done most mischief, then entered they into peace
and amity with them. And not the less for all this peace, and amity, and tribute, they went everywhere in
troops; plundering, and spoiling, and slaying our miserable people. In this year, between the Nativity of St.
Mary and Michaelmas, they beset Canterbury, and entered therein through treachery; for Elfmar delivered the
city to them, whose life Archbishop Elfeah formerly saved. And there they seized Archbishop Elfeah, and
Elfward the king's steward, and Abbess Leofruna, (56) and Bishop Godwin; and Abbot Elfmar they suffered
to go away. And they took therein all the men, and husbands, and wives; and it was impossible for any man
to say how many they were; and in the city they continued afterwards as long as they would. And, when they
had surveyed all the city, they then returned to their ships, and led the archbishop with them. Then was a
captive he who before was of England head and Christendom; there might be seen
great wretchedness, where oft before great bliss was seen, in the fated city, whence first to us came
Christendom, and bliss 'fore God and 'fore the world. And the archbishop they kept with them until the time
when they martyred him.
A.D. 1012. This year came Alderman Edric, and all the oldest counsellors of England, clerk and laity, to
London before Easter, which was then on the ides of April; and there they abode, over Easter, until all the
tribute was paid, which was 48,000 pounds. Then on the Saturday was the army much stirred against the
bishop; because he would not promise them any fee, and forbade that any man should give anything for him.
They were also much drunken; for there was wine brought them from the south. Then took they the bishop,
and led him to their hustings, on the eve of the Sunday after Easter, which was the thirteenth before the
calends of May; and there they then shamefully killed him. They overwhelmed him with bones and horns of
oxen; and one of them smote him with an axeiron on the head; so that he sunk downwards with the blow;
and his holy blood fell on the earth, whilst his sacred soul was sent to the realm of God. The corpse in the
morning was carried to London; and the bishops, Ednoth and Elfhun, and the citizens, received him with all
honour, and buried him in St. Paul's minster; where God now showeth this holy martyr's miracles. When the
tribute was paid, and the peace oaths were sworn, then dispersed the army as widely as it was before
collected. Then submitted to the king five and forty of the ships of the enemy; and promised him, that they
would defend this land, and he should feed and clothe them.
A.D. 1013. The year after that Archbishop Elfeah was martyred, the king appointed Lifing to the
archiepiscopal see of Canterbury. And in the same year, before the month August, came King Sweyne with
his fleet to Sandwich; and very soon went about EastAnglia into the Humbermouth, and so upward along
the Trent, until he came to Gainsborough. Then soon submitted to him Earl Utred, and all the Northumbrians,
and all the people of Lindsey, and afterwards the people of the Five Boroughs, and soon after all the army to
the north of Watlingstreet; and hostages were given him from each shire. When he understood that all the
people were subject to him, then ordered he that his army should have provision and horses; and he then went
southward with his main army, committing his ships and the hostages to his son Knute. And after he came
over Watlingstreet, they wrought the greatest mischief that any army could do. Then he went to Oxford; and
the population soon submitted, and gave hostages; thence to Winchester, where they did the same. Thence
went they eastward to London; and many of the party sunk in the Thames, because they kept not to any
bridge. When he came to the city, the population would not submit; but held their ground in full fight against
him, because therein was King Ethelred, and Thurkill with him. Then went King Sweyne thence to
Wallingford; and so over Thames westward to Bath, where he abode with his army. Thither came Alderman
Ethelmar, and all the western thanes with him, and all submitted to Sweyne, and gave hostages. When he had
thus settled all, then went he northward to his ships; and all the population fully received him, and considered
him full king. The population of London also after this submitted to him, and gave hostages; because they
dreaded that he would undo them. Then bade Sweyne full tribute and forage for his army during the winter;
and Thurkill bade the same for the army that lay at Greenwich: besides this, they plundered as oft as they
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part III 59
Page No 62
would. And when this nation could neither resist in the south nor in the north, King Ethelred abode some
while with the fleet that lay in the Thames; and the lady (57) went afterwards over sea to her brother Richard,
accompanied by Elfsy, Abbot of Peterborough. The king sent Bishop Elfun with the ethelings, Edward and
Alfred, over sea; that he might instruct them. Then went the king from the fleet, about midwinter, to the Isle
of Wight; and there abode for the season; after which he went over sea to Richard, with whom he abode till
the time when Sweyne died. Whilst the lady was with her brother beyond sea, Elfsy, Abbot of Peterborough,
who was there with her, went to the abbey called Boneval, where St. Florentine's body lay; and there found a
miserable place, a miserable abbot, and miserable monks: because they had been plundered. There he bought
of the abbot, and of the monks, the body of St. Florentine, all but the head, for 500 pounds; which, on his
return home, he offered to Christ and St. Peter.
A.D. 1014. This year King Sweyne ended his days at Candlemas, the third day before the nones of February;
and the same year Elfwy, Bishop of York, was consecrated in London, on the festival of St. Juliana. The fleet
all chose Knute for king; whereupon advised all the counsellors of England, clergy and laity, that they should
send after King Ethelred; saying, that no sovereign was dearer to them than their natural lord, if he would
govern them better than he did before. Then sent the king hither his son Edward, with his messengers; who
had orders to greet all his people, saying that he would be their faithful lord would better each of those
things that they disliked and that each of the things should be forgiven which had been either done or said
against him; provided they all unanimously, without treachery, turned to him. Then was full friendship
established, in word and in deed and in compact, on either side. And every Danish king they proclaimed an
outlaw for ever from England. Then came King Ethelred home, in Lent, to his own people; and he was gladly
received by them all. Meanwhile, after the death of Sweyne, sat Knute with his army in Gainsborough until
Easter; and it was agreed between him and the people of Lindsey, that they should supply him with horses,
and afterwards go out all together and plunder. But King Ethelred with his full force came to Lindsey before
they were ready; and they plundered and burned, and slew all the men that they could reach. Knute, the son of
Sweyne, went out with his fleet (so were the wretched people deluded by him), and proceeded southward
until he came to Sandwich. There he landed the hostages that were given to his father, and cut off their hands
and ears and their noses. Besides all these evils, the king ordered a tribute to the army that lay at Greenwich,
of 21,000 pounds. This year, on the eve of St. Michael's day, came the great seaflood, which spread wide
over this land, and ran so far up as it never did before, overwhelming many towns, and an innumerable
multitude of people.
Part IV
A.D. 1015. This year was the great council at Oxford; where Alderman Edric betrayed Sigferth and Morcar,
the eldest thanes belonging to the Seven Towns. He allured them into his bower, where they were shamefully
slain. Then the king took all their possessions, and ordered the widow of Sigferth to be secured, and brought
within Malmsbury. After a little interval, Edmund Etheling went and seized her, against the king's will, and
had her to wife. Then, before the Nativity of St. Mary, went the etheling westnorth into the Five Towns,
(58) and soon plundered all the property of Sigferth and Morcar; and all the people submitted to him. At the
same time came King Knute to Sandwich, and went soon all about Kent into Wessex, until he came to the
mouth of the Frome; and then plundered in Dorset, and in Wiltshire, and in Somerset. King Ethelred,
meanwhile, lay sick at Corsham; and Alderman Edric collected an army there, and Edmund the etheling in
the north. When they came together, the alderman designed to betray Edmund the etheling, but he could not;
whereupon they separated without an engagement, and sheered off from their enemies. Alderman Edric then
seduced forty ships from the king, and submitted to Knute. The WestSaxons also submitted, and gave
hostages, and horsed the army. And he continued there until midwinter.
A.D. 1016. This year came King Knute with a marine force of one hundred and sixty ships, and Alderman
Edric with him, over the Thames into Mercia at Cricklade; whence they proceeded to Warwickshire, during
the middle of the winter, and plundered therein, and burned, and slew all they met. Then began Edmund the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 60
Page No 63
etheling to gather an army, which, when it was collected, could avail him nothing, unless the king were there
and they had the assistance of the citizens of London. The expedition therefore was frustrated, and each man
betook himself home. After this. an army was again ordered, under full penalties, that every person, however
distant, should go forth; and they sent to the king in London, and besought him to come to meet the army
with the aid that he could collect. When they were all assembled, it succeeded nothing better than it often did
before; and, when it was told the king, that those persons would betray him who ought to assist him, then
forsook he the army, and returned again to London. Then rode Edmund the etheling to Earl Utred in
Northumbria; and every man supposed that they would collect an army King Knute; but they went into
Stafforddhire, and to Shrewsbury, and to Chester; and they plundered on their parts, and Knute on his. He
went out through Buckinghamshire to Bedfordshire; thence to Huntingdonshire, and so into
Northamptonshire along the fens to Stamford. Thence into Lincolnshire. Thence to Nottinghamshire; and so
into Northumbria toward York. When Utred understood this, he ceased from plundering, and hastened
northward, and submitted for need, and all the Northumbrians with him; but, though he gave hostages, he was
nevertheless slain by the advice of Alderman Edric, and Thurkytel, the son of Nafan, with him. After this,
King Knute appointed Eric earl over Northumbria, as Utred was; and then went southward another way, all
by west, till the whole army came, before Easter, to the ships. Meantime Edmund Etheling went to London to
his father: and after Easter went King Knute with all his ships toward London; but it happened that King
Ethelred died ere the ships came. He ended his days on St. George's day; having held his kingdom in much
tribulation and difficulty as long as his life continued. After his decease, all the peers that were in London,
and the citizens, chose Edmund king; who bravely defended his kingdom while his time was. Then came the
ships to Greenwich, about the gangdays, and within a short interval went to London; where they sunk a deep
ditch on the south side, and dragged their ships to the west side of the bridge. Afterwards they trenched the
city without, so that no man could go in or out, and often fought against it: but the citizens bravely withstood
them. King Edmund had ere this gone out, and invaded the WestSaxons, who all submitted to him; and soon
afterward he fought with the enemy at Pen near Gillingham. A second battle he fought, after midsummer, at
Sherston; where much slaughter was made on either side, and the leaders themselves came together in the
fight. Alderman Edric and Aylmer the darling were assisting the army against King Edmund. Then collected
he his force the third time, and went to London, all by north of the Thames, and so out through Clayhanger,
and relieved the citizens, driving the enemy to their ships. It was within two nights after that the king went
over at Brentford; where he fought with the enemy, and put them to flight: but there many of the English
were drowned, from their own carelessness; who went before the main army with a design to plunder. After
this the king went into Wessex, and collected his army; but the enemy soon returned to London, and beset the
city without, and fought strongly against it both by water and land. But the almighty God delivered them. The
enemy went afterward from London with their ships into the Orwell; where they went up and proceeded into
Mercia, slaying and burning whatsoever they overtook, as their custom is; and, having provided themselves
with meat, they drove their ships and their herds into the Medway. Then assembled King Edmund the fourth
time all the English nation, and forded over the Thames at Brentford; whence he proceeded into Kent. The
enemy fled before him with their horses into the Isle of Shepey; and the king slew as many of them as he
could overtake. Alderman Edric then went to meet the king at Aylesford; than which no measure could be
more illadvised. The enemy, meanwhile, returned into Essex, and advanced into Mercia, destroying all that
he overtook. When the king understood that the army was up, then collected he the fifth time all the English
nation, and went behind them, and overtook them in Essex, on the down called Assingdon; where they
fiercely came together. Then did Alderman Edric as he often did before he first began the flight with the
Maisevethians, and so betrayed his natural lord and all the people of England. There had Knute the victory,
though all England fought against him! There was then slain Bishop Ednoth, and Abbot Wulsy, and
Alderman Elfric, and Alderman Godwin of Lindsey, and Ulfkytel of EastAnglia, and Ethelward, the son of
Alderman Ethelsy (59). And all the nobility of the English nation was there undone! After this fight went
King Knute up with his army into Glocestershire, where he heard say that King Edmund was. Then advised
Alderman Edric, and the counsellors that were there assembled, that the kings should make peace with each
other, and produce hostages. Then both the kings met together at Olney, south of Deerhurst, and became
allies and sworn brothers. There they confirmed their friendship both with pledges and with oaths, and settled
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 61
Page No 64
the pay of the army. With this covenant they parted: King Edmund took to Wessex, and Knute to Mercia and
the northern district. The army then went to their ships with the things they had taken; and the people of
London made peace with them, and purchased their security, whereupon they brought their ships to London,
and provided themselves winterquarters therein. On the feast of St. Andrew died King Edmund; and he is
buried with his grandfather Edgar at Gastonbury. In the same year died Wulfgar, Abbot of Abingdon; and
Ethelsy took to the abbacy.
A.D. 1017. This year King Knute took to the whole government of England, and divided it into four parts:
Wessex for himself, EastAnglia for Thurkyll, Mercia for Edric, Northumbria for Eric. This year also was
Alderman Edric slain at London, and Norman, son of Alderman Leofwin, and Ethelward, son of Ethelmar the
Great, and Britric, son of Elfege of Devonshire. King Knute also banished Edwy etheling, whom he
afterwards ordered to be slain, and Edwy, king of the churls; and before the calends of August the king gave
an order to fetch him the widow of the other king, Ethelred, the daughter of Richard, to wife.
((A.D. 1017. This year Canute was chosen king.))
A.D. 1018. This year was the payment of the tribute over all England; that was, altogether, two and seventy
thousand pounds, besides that which the citizens of London paid; and that was ten thousand five hundred
pounds. The army then went partly to Denmark; and forty ships were left with King Knute. The Danes and
Angles were united at Oxford under Edgar's law; and this year died Abbot Ethelsy at Abingdon, to whom
Ethelwine succeeded.
A.D. 1019. This year went King Knute with nine ships to Denmark, where he abode all the winter; and
Archbishop Elfstan died this year, who was also named Lifing. He was a very upright man both before God
and before the world.
((A.D. 1019. And this winter died Archbishop Elfstan [of Canterbury]: he was named Living; and he was a
very provident man, both as to God and as to the world.))
A.D. 1020. This year came King Knute back to England; and there was at Easter a great council at
Cirencester, where Alderman Ethelward was outlawed, and Edwy, king of the churls. This year went the king
to Assingdon; with Earl Thurkyll, and Archbishop Wulfstan, and other bishops, and also abbots, and many
monks with them; and he ordered to be built there a minster of stone and lime, for the souls of the men who
were there slain, and gave it to his own priest, whose name was Stigand; and they consecrated the minster at
Assingdon. And Ethelnoth the monk, who had been dean at Christ's church, was the same year on the ides of
November consecrated Bishop of Christ's church by Archbishop Wulfstan.
((A.D. 1020. And caused to be built there [Canterbury] a minster of stone and lime, for the souls of the men
who there were slain, and gave it to one of his priests, whose name was Stigand.))
A.D. 1021. This year King Knute, at Martinmas, outlawed Earl Thurkyll; and Bishop Elfgar, the abundant
giver of alms, died in the morning of Christmas day.
A.D. 1022. This year went King Knute out with his ships to the Isle of Wight. And Bishop Ethelnoth went to
Rome; where he was received with much honour by Benedict the magnificent pope, who with his own hand
placed the pall upon him, and with great pomp consecrated him archbishop, and blessed him, on the nones of
October. The archbishop on the selfsame day with the same pall performed mass, as the pope directed him,
after which he was magnificently entertained by the pope himself; and afterwards with a full blessing
proceeded homewards. Abbot Leofwine, who had been unjustly expelled from Ely, was his companion; and
he cleared himself of everything, which, as the pope informed him, had been laid to his charge, on the
testimony of the archbishop and of all the company that were with him.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 62
Page No 65
((A.D. 1022. And afterwards with the pall he there [at Rome] performed mass as the pope instructed him: and
he feasted after that with the pope; and afterwards went home with a full blessing.))
A.D. 1023. This year returned King Knute to England; and Thurkyll and he were reconciled. He committed
Denmark and his son to the care of Thurkyll, whilst he took Thurkyll's son with him to England. This year
died Archbishop Wulfstan; and Elfric succeeded him; and Archbishop Egelnoth blessed him in Canterbury.
This year King Knute in London, in St. Paul's minster, gave full leave (60) to Archbishop Ethelnoth, Bishop
Britwine, and all God's servants that were with them, that they might take up from the grave the archbishop,
Saint Elphege. And they did so, on the sixth day before the ides of June; and the illustrious king, and the
archbishop, and the diocesan bishops, and the earls, and very many others, both clergy and laity, carried by
ship his holy corpse over the Thames to Southwark. And there they committed the holy martyr to the
archbishop and his companions; and they with worthy pomp and sprightly joy carried him to Rochester.
There on the third day came the Lady Emma with her royal son Hardacnute; and they all with much majesty,
and bliss, and songs of praise, carried the holy archbishop into Canterbury, and so brought him gloriously
into the church, on the third day before the ides of June. Afterwards, on the eighth day, the seventeenth before
the calends of July, Archbishop Ethelnoth, and Bishop Elfsy, and Bishop Britwine, and all they that were
with them, lodged the holy corpse of Saint Elphege on the north side of the altar of Christ; to the praise of
God, and to the glory of the holy archbishop, and to the everlasting salvation of all those who there his holy
body daily seek with earnest heart and all humility. May God Almighty have mercy on all Christian men
through the holy intercession of Elphege!
((A.D. 1023. And he caused St. Elphege's remains to be borne from London to Canterbury.))
A.D. 1025. This year went King Knute to Denmark with a fleet to the holm by the holy river; where against
him came Ulf and Eglaf, with a very large force both by land and sea, from Sweden. There were very many
men lost on the side of King Knute, both of Danish and English; and the Swedes had possession of the field
of battle.
A.D. 1026. This year went Bishop Elfric to Rome, and received the pall of Pope John on the second day
before the ides of November.
A.D. 1028. This year went King Knute from England to Norway with fifty ships manned with English thanes,
and drove King Olave from the land, which he entirely secured to himself.
A.D. 1029. This year King Knute returned home to England.
A.D. 1030. This year returned King Olave into Norway; but the people gathered together against him, and
fought against him; and he was there slain, in Norway, by his own people, and was afterwards canonised.
Before this, in the same year, died Hacon the doughty earl, at sea.
((A.D. 1030. This year came King Olave again into Norway, and the people gathered against him, and fought
against him; and he was there slain.))
A.D. 1031. This year returned King Knute; and as soon as he came to England he gave to Christ's church in
Canterbury the haven of Sandwich, and all the rights that arise therefrom, on either side of the haven; so that
when the tide is highest and fullest, and there be a ship floating as near the land as possible, and there be a
man standing upon the ship with a taperaxe in his hand, whithersoever the large taperaxe might be thrown
out of the ship, throughout all that land the ministers of Christ's church should enjoy their rights. This year
went King Knute to Rome; and the same year, as soon as he returned home, he went to Scotland; and
Malcolm, king of the Scots, submitted to him, and became his man, with two other kings, Macbeth and
Jehmar; but he held his allegiance a little while only. Robert, Earl of Normandy, went this year to Jerusalem,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 63
Page No 66
where he died; and William, who was afterwards King of England, succeeded to the earldom, though he was
a child.
A.D. 1032. This year appeared that wild fire, such as no man ever remembered before, which did great
damage in many places. The same year died Elfsy, Bishop of Winchester; and Elfwin, the king's priest,
succeeded him.
A.D. 1033. This year died Bishop Merewhite in Somersetshire, who is buried at Glastonbury; and Bishop
Leofsy, whose body resteth at Worcester, and to whose see Brihteh was promoted.
A.D. 1034. This year died Bishop Etheric, who lies at Ramsey.
A.D. 1035. This year died King Knute at Shaftesbury, on the second day before the ides of November; and he
is buried at Winchester in the old minster. He was king over all England very near twenty winters. Soon after
his decease, there was a council of all the nobles at Oxford; wherein Earl Leofric, and almost all the thanes
north of the Thames, and the naval men in London, chose Harold to be governor of all England, for himself
and his brother Hardacnute, who was in Denmark. Earl Godwin, and all the eldest men in Wessex, withstood
it as long as they could; but they could do nothing against it. It was then resolved that Elfgiva, the mother of
Hardacnute, should remain at Winchester with the household of the king her son. They held all Wessex in
hand, and Earl Godwin was their chief man. Some men said of Harold, that he was the son of King Knute and
of Elfgive the daughter of Alderman Elfelm; but it was thought very incredible by many men. He was,
nevertheless, full king over all England. Harold himself said that he was the son of Knute and of Elfgive the
Hampshire lady; though it was not true; but he sent and ordered to be taken from her all the best treasure that
she could not hold, which King Knute possessed; and she nevertheless abode there continually within the city
as long as she could.
A.D. 1036. This year came hither Alfred the innocent etheling, son of King Ethelred, and wished to visit his
mother, who abode at Winchester: but Earl Godwin, and other men who had much power in this land, did not
suffer it; because such conduct was very agreeable to Harold, though it was unjust. Him did Godwin let, and
in prison set. His friends, who did not fly, they slew promiscuously. And those they did not sell, like
slaughter'd cattle fell! Whilst some they spared to bind, only to wander blind! Some hamstrung, helpless
stood, whilst others they pursued. A deed more dreary none in this our land was done, since Englishmen gave
place to hordes of Danish race. But repose we must in God our trust, that blithe as day with Christ live they,
who guiltless died their country's pride! The prince with courage met each cruel evil yet; till 'twas
decreed, they should him lead, all bound, as he was then, to Elybury fen. But soon their royal prize bereft
they of his eyes! Then to the monks they brought their captive; where he sought a refuge from his foes till
life's sad evening close. His body ordered then these good and holy men, according to his worth, low in the
sacred earth, to the steeple fullnigh, in the south aile to lie of the transept west his soul with Christ doth
rest.
((A.D. 1036. This year died King Canute at Shaftesbury, and he is buried at Winchester in the Oldminster:
and he was king over all England very nigh twenty years. And soon after his decease there was a meeting of
all the witan at Oxford; and Leofric, the earl, and almost all the thanes north of the Thames, and the
"lithsmen" at London, chose Harold for chief of all England, him and his brother Hardecanute who was in
Denmark. And Godwin the earl and all the chief men of Wessex withstood it as long as they could; but they
were unable to effect anything in opposition to it. And then it was decreed that Elfgive, Hardecanute's
mother, should dwell at Winchester with the king's, her son's, house hold, and hold all Wessex in his power;
and Godwin the earl was their man. Some men said of Harold that he was son of King Canute and of Elfgive,
daughter of Elfelm the ealdorman, but it seemed quite incredible to many men; and he was nevertheless full
king over all England.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 64
Page No 67
A.D. 1037. This year men chose Harold king over all; and forsook Hardacnute, because he was too long in
Denmark; and then drove out his mother Elgiva, the relict of King Knute, without any pity, against the raging
winter! She, who was the mother of Edward as well as of King Hardacnute, sought then the peace of Baldwin
by the south sea. Then came she to Bruges, beyond sea; and Earl Baldwin well received her there; and he
gave her a habitation at Bruges, and protected her, and entertained her there as long as she had need. Ere this
in the same year died Eafy, the excellent Dean of Evesham.
((A.D. 1037. This year was driven out Elfgive, King Canute's relict; she was King Hardecanute's mother; and
she then sought the protection of Baldwin south of the sea, and he gave her a dwelling in Bruges, and
protected and kept her, the while that she there was.))
A.D. 1038. This year died Ethelnoth, the good archbishop, on the calends of November; and, within a little of
this time, Bishop Ethelric in Sussex, who prayed to God that he would not let him live any time after his dear
father Ethelnoth; and within seven nights of this he also departed. Then, before Christmas, died Bishop
Brihteh in Worcestershire; and soon after this, Bishop Elfric in East Anglia. Then succeeded Bishop Edsy to
the archbishopric, Grimkytel to the see of Sussex, and Bishop Lifing to that of Worcester shire and
Gloucestershire.
((A.D. 1038. This year died Ethelnoth, the good archbishop, on the kalends of November, and a little after,
Ethelric, bishop in Sussex, and then before Christmas, Briteagus, Bishop in Worcestershire, and soon after,
Elfric, bishop in EastAnglia.))
A.D. 1039. This year happened the terrible wind; and Bishop Britmar died at Lichfield. The Welsh slew
Edwin. brother of Earl Leofric, and Thurkil, and Elfget, and many good men with them. This year also came
Hardacnute to Bruges, where his mother was.
((A.D. 1039. This year King Harold died at Oxford, on the sixteenth before the kalends of April, and he was
buried at Westminster. And he ruled England four years and sixteen weeks; and in his days sixteen ships were
retained in pay, at the rate of eight marks for each rower, in like manner as had been before done in the days
of King Canute. And in this same year came King Hardecanute to Sandwich, seven days before midsummer.
And he was soon acknowledged as well by English as by Danes; though his advisers afterwards grievously
requited it, when they decreed that seventytwo ships should be retained in pay, at the rate of eight marks for
each rower. And in this same year the sester of wheat went up to fiftyfive pence, and even further.))
A.D. 1040. This year died King Harold at Oxford, on the sixteenth before the calends of April; and he was
buried at Westminster. He governed England four years and sixteen weeks; and in his days tribute was paid to
sixteen ships, at the rate of eight marks for each steersman, as was done before in King Knute's days. The
same year they sent after Hardacnute to Bruges, supposing they did well; and he came hither to Sandwich
with sixty ships, seven nights before midsummer. He was soon received both by the Angles and Danes,
though his advisers afterwards severely paid for it. They ordered a tribute for sixtytwo ships, at the rate of
eight marks for each steersman. Then were alienated from him all that before desired him; for he framed
nothing royal during his whole reign. He ordered the dead Harold to be dragged up and thrown into a ditch.
This year rose the sester of wheat to fiftyfive pence, and even further. This year Archbishop Edsy went to
Rome.
((A.D. 1040. This year was the tribute paid; that twentyone thousand pounds and ninetynine pounds. And
after that they paid to thirtytwo ships, eleven thousand and fortyeight pounds. And, in this same year, came
Edward, son of King Ethelred, hither to land, from Wealland; he was brother of King Hardecanute: they
were both sons of Elfgive; Emma, who was daughter of Earl Richard.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 65
Page No 68
A.D. 1041. This year was the tribute paid to the army; that was, 21,099 pounds; and afterwards to thirtytwo
ships, 11,048 pounds. This year also ordered Hardacnute to lay waste all Worcestershire, on account of the
two servants of his household, who exacted the heavy tribute. That people slew them in the town within the
minster. Early in this same year came Edward, the son of King Ethelred, hither to land, from Wealland to
Madron. He was the brother of King Hardacnute, and had been driven from this land for many years: but he
was nevertheless sworn as king, and abode in his brother's court while he lived. They were both sons of
Elfgive Emma, who was the daughter oœ Earl Richard. In this year also Hardacnute betrayed Eadulf, under
the mask of friendship. He was also allied to him by marriage. This year was Egelric consecrated Bishop of
York, on the third day before the ides of January.
((A.D. 1041. This year died King Hardecanute at Lambeth, on the sixth before the ides of June: and he was
king over all England two years wanting ten days; and he is buried in the Oldminster at Winchester with
King Canute his father. And his mother, for his soul, gave to the Newminster the head of St. Valentine the
martyr. And before he was buried, all people chose Edward for king at London: may he hold it the while that
God shall grant it to him! And all that year was a very heavy time, in many things and divers, as well in
respect to ill seasons as to the fruits of the earth. And so much cattle perished in the year as no man before
remembered, as well through various diseases as through tempests. And in this same time died Elsinus,
Abbot of Peterborough; and then Arnwius the monk was chosen abbot, because he was a very good man, and
of great simplicity.))
A.D. 1042. This year died King Hardacnute at Lambeth, as he stood drinking: he fell suddenly to the earth
with a tremendous struggle; but those who were nigh at hand took him up; and he spoke not a word
afterwards, but expired on the sixth day before the ides of June. He was king over all England two years
wanting ten nights; and he is buried in the old minster at Winchester with King Knute his father. And his
mother for his soul gave to the new minster the head of St. Valentine the Martyr: and ere he was buried all
people chose Edward for king in London. And they received him as their king, as was natural; and he reigned
as long as God granted him. All that year was the season very severe in many and various respects: both from
the inclemency of the weather, and the loss of the fruits of the earth. More cattle died this year than any man
ever remembered, either from various diseases, or from the severity of the weather. At this same time died
Elfsinus, Abbot of Peterborough; and they chose Arnwy, a monk, for their abbot; because he was a very good
and benevolent man.
A.D. 1043. This year was Edward consecrated king at Winchester, early on Easterday, with much pomp.
Then was Easter on the third day before the nones of April. Archbishop Edsy consecrated him, and before all
people well admonished him. And Stigand the priest was consecrated bishop over the East Angles. And this
year, fourteen nights before the mass of St. Andrew, it was advised the king, that he and Earl Leofric and Earl
Godwin and Earl Siward with their retinue, should ride from Gloucester to Winchester unawares upon the
lady; and they deprived her of all the treasures that she had; which were immense; because she was formerly
very hard upon the king her son, and did less for him than he wished before he was king, and also since: but
they suffered her to remain there afterwards. And soon after this the king determined to invest all the land
that his mother had in her hands, and took from her all that she had in gold and in silver and in numberless
things; because she formerly held it too fast against him. Soon after this Stigand was deprived of his
bishopric; and they took all that he had into their hands for the king, because he was nighest the counsel of
his mother; and she acted as he advised, as men supposed.
((A.D. 1043. This year was Edward consecrated king at Winchester on the first day of Easter. And this year,
fourteen days before Andrew'smass, the king was advised to ride from Gloucester, and Leofric the earl, and
Godwin the earl, and Sigwarth [Siward] the earl, with their followers, to Winchester, unawares upon the lady
[Emma]; and they bereaved her of all the treasures which she possessed, they were not to be told, because
before that she had been very hard with the king her son; inasmuch as she had done less for him than he
would, before he was king, and also since: and they suffered her after that to remain therein. This year King
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 66
Page No 69
Edward took the daughter [Edgitha] of Godwin the earl for his wife. And in this same year died Bishop
Brithwin, and he held the bishopric thirtyeight years, that was the bishopric of Sherborne, and Herman the
king's priest succeeded to the bishopric. And in this year Wulfric was hallowed Abbot of St. Augustine's at
Christmas, on Stephen's massday, by leave of the king, and, on account of his great infirmity, of Abbot
Elfstun.))
A.D. 1044. This year Archbishop Edsy resigned his see from infirmity, and consecrated Siward, Abbot of
Abingdon, bishop thereto, with the permission and advice of the king and Earl Godwin. It was known to few
men else before it was done; because the archbishop feared that some other man would either beg or buy it,
whom he might worse trust and oblige than him, if it were known to many men. This year there was very
great hunger over all England, and corn so dear as no man remembered before; so that the sester of wheat
rose to sixty pence, and even further. And this same year the king went out to Sandwich with thirtyfive
ships; and Athelstan, the churchwarden, succeeded to the abbacy of Abingdon, and Stigand returned to his
bishopric. In the same year also King Edward took to wife Edgitha, the daughter of Earl Godwin, ten nights
before Candlemas. And in the same year died Britwold, Bishop of Wiltshire, on the tenth day before the
calends of May; which bishopric he held thirtyeight winters; that was, the bishopric of Sherborn. And
Herman, the king's priest, succeeded to the bishopric. This year Wulfric was consecrated Abbot of St.
Augustine's, at Christmas, on the massday of St. Stephen, by the king's leave and that of Abbot Elfstan, by
reason of his great infirmity.
((A.D. 1044. This year died Living, Bishop in Devonshire, and Leoftic succeeded thereto; he was the king's
priest. And in this same year died Elfstan, Abbot of St. Augustine's, on the third before the nones of July.
And in this same year was outlawed Osgod Clapa.))
A.D. 1045. This year died Elfward, Bishop of London, on the eighth day before the calends of August. He
was formerly Abbot of Evesham, and well furthered that monastery the while that he was there. He went then
to Ramsey, and there resigned his life: and Mannie was chosen abbot, being consecrated on the fourth day
before the ides of August. This year Gunnilda, a woman of rank, a relative of King Knute, was driven out,
and resided afterwards at Bruges a long while, and then went to Denmark. King Edward during the year
collected a large fleet at Sandwich, through the threatening of Magnus of Norway; but his contests with
Sweyne in Denmark prevented him from coming hither.
((A.D. 1045. This year died Grimkytel, Bishop in Sussex, and Heca, the king's priest, succeeded thereto. And
in this year died Alwyn, Bishop of Winchester, on the fourth before the kalends of September; and Stigand,
bishop to the north [Flanders], succeeded thereto. And in the same year Sweyn the earl went out to Baldwin's
land [Of Elmham] to Bruges and abode there all the winter; and then in summer he went out.))
A.D. 1046. This year died Lifting, the eloquent bishop, on the tenth day before the calends of April. He had
three bishoprics; one in Devonshire, one in Cornwall, and another in Worcestershire. Then succeeded
Leofric, who was the king's priest, to Devonshire and to Cornwall, and Bishop Aldred to Worcestershire. This
year died Elfwine, Bishop of Winchester, on the fourth day before the calends of September; and Stigand,
Bishop of Norfolk, was raised to his see. Ere this, in the same year, died Grimkytel, Bishop of Sussex; and he
lies at Christchurch, in Canterbury. And Heca, the' king's priest, succeeded to the bishopric. Sweyne also
sent hither, and requested the aid of fifty ships against Magnus, king of the Norwegians; but it was thought
unwise by all the people, and it was prevented, because that Magnus had a large navy: and he drove Sweyne
out, and with much slaughter won the land. The Danes then gave him much money, and received him as king.
The same year Magnus died. The same year also Earl Sweyne went out to Baldwin's land, to Bruges; and
remained there all the winter. In the summer he departed.
A.D. 1046. This year went Earl Sweyne into Wales; and Griffin, king of the northern men with him; and
hostages were delivered to him. As he returned homeward, he ordered the Abbess of Leominster to be fetched
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 67
Page No 70
him; and he had her as long as he list, after which he let her go home. In this same year was outlawed Osgod
Clapa, the master of horse, before midwinter. And in the same year, after Candlemas, came the strong winter,
with frost and with snow, and with all kinds of bad weather; so that there was no man then alive who could
remember so severe a winter as this was, both through loss of men and through loss of cattle; yea, fowls and
fishes through much cold and hunger perished.
((A.D. 1046. This year died Brithwin, bishop in Wiltshire, and Herman was appointed to his see. In that year
King Edward gathered a large shipforce at Sandwich, on account of the threatening of Magnus in Norway:
but his and Sweyn's contention in Denmark hindered his coming here. This year died Athelstan, Abbot of
Abingdon, and Sparhawk, monk of St. Edmund'sbury, succeeded him. And in this same year died bishop
Siward, and Archbishop Eadsine again obtained the whole bishopric. And in this same year Lothen and Irling
came with twentyfive ships to Sandwich, and there took unspeakable booty, in men, and in gold, and in
silver, so that no man knew how much it all was. And they then went about Thanet, and would there do the
like; but the land'sfolk strenuously withstood them, and denied them as well landing as water; and thence
utterly put them to flight. And they betook themselves then into Essex, and there they ravaged, and took men,
and property, and whatsoever they might find. And they betook themselves then east to Baldwine's land, and
there they sold what they had plundered; and after that went their way east, whence they before had come. In
this year was the great synod at St. Remi's [Rheins]. Thereat was Leo the pope, and the Archbishop of
Burgundy [Lyons], and the Archbishop of Besancon, and the Archbishop of Treves, and the Archbishop of
Rheims; and many men besides, both clergy and laity. And King Edward sent thither Bishop Dudoc [Of
Wells], and Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, and Abbot Elfwin [Of Ramsey], that they might make known
to the king what should be there resolved on for Christendom. And in this same year King Edward went out
to Sandwich with a great fleet. And Sweyn the earl, son of Godwin the earl, came in to Bosham with seven
ships; and he obtained the king's protection, and he was promised that he should be held worthy of everything
which he before possessed. Then Harold the earl, his brother, and Beorn the earl contended that he should not
be held worthy of any of the things which the king had granted to them: but a protection of four days was
appointed him to go to his ships. Then befell it during this, that word came to the king that hostile ships lay
westward, and were ravaging. Then went Godwin the earl west about with two of the king's ships; the one
commanded Harold the earl, and the other Tosty his brother; and fortytwo of the people's ships. Then
Harold the earl was removed from the king's ship which Harold the earl before had commanded. Then went
they west to Pevensey, and lay there weatherbound. Upon this, after two days, then came Sweyn the earl
thither, and spoke with his father, and with Beorn the earl, and begged of Beorn that he would go with him to
the king at Sandwich, and help him to the king's friendship: and he granted it. Then went they as if they
would go to the king. Then whilst they were riding, then begged Sweyn of him that he would go with him to
his ships: saying that his seamen would depart from him unless he should at the soonest come thither. Then
went they both where his ships lay. When they came thither, then begged Sweyn the earl of him that he
would go with him on shipboard. He strenuously refused, so long as until his seamen seized him, and threw
him into the boat, and bound him, and rowed to the ship, and put him there aboard. Then they hoisted up their
sails and ran west to Exmouth, and had him with them until they slew him: and they took the body and buried
it in a church. And then his friends and litsmen came from London, and took him up, and bore him to
Winchester to the Oldminster, and he is there buried with King Canute his uncle. And Sweyn went then east
to Baldwin's land, and sat down there all the winter at Bruges, with his full protection. And in the same year
died Eadnoth [II.] bishop [Of Dorchester] of the north and Ulf was made bishop.))
A.D. 1047. This year died Athelstan, Abbot of Abingdon, on the fourth day before the calends of April; and
Sparhawk, monk of St. Edmundsbury, succeeded him. Easter day was then on the third day before the nones
of April; and there was over all England very great loss of men this year also. The same year came to
Sandwich Lothen and Irling, with twentyfive ships, and plundered and took incalculable spoil, in men, and
in gold, and in silver, so that no man wist what it all was; and went then about Thanet, and would there have
done the same; but the landfolk firmly withstood, and resisted them both by land and sea, and thence put
them to flight withal. They betook themselves thence into Essex, where they plundered and took men, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 68
Page No 71
whatsoever they could find, whence they departed eastward to Baldwin's land, and having deposited the
booty they had gained, they returned east to the place whence they had come before.
((A.D. 1047. This year died Living the eloquent bishop, on the tenth before the kalends of April, and he had
three bishoprics; one in Devonshire, and in Cornwall, and in Worcester. Then Leofric (61) succeeded to
Devonshire and to Cornwall, and Bishop Aldred to Worcester. And in this year Osgod, the master of the
horse, was outlawed: and Magnus [King of Norway] won Denmark. In this year there was a great council in
London at midLent, and nine ships of lightermen were discharged, and five remained behind. In this same
year came Sweyn the earl into England. And in this same year was the great synod at Rome, and King
Edward sent thither Bishop Heroman and Bishop Aldred; and they came thither on Easter eve. And
afterwards the pope held a synod at Vercelli, and Bishop Ulf came thereto; and well nigh would they have
broken his staff, if he had not given very great gifts; because he knew not how to do his duty so well as he
should. And in this year died Archbishop Eadsine, on the fourth before the kalends of November.))
A.D. 1048. This year came Sweyne back to Denmark; and Harold, the uncle of Magnus, went to Norway on
the death of Magnus, and the Northmen submitted to him. He sent an embassy of peace to this land, as did
also Sweyne from Denmark, requesting of King Edward naval assistance to the amount at least of fifty ships;
but all the people resisted it. This year also there was an earthquake, on the calends of May, in many places;
at Worcester, at Wick, and at Derby, and elsewhere wide throughout England; with very great loss by disease
of men and of cattle over all England; and the wild fire in Derbyshire and elsewhere did much harm. In the
same year the enemy plundered Sandwich, and the Isle of Wight, and slew the best men that were there; and
King Edward and the earls went out after them with their ships. The same year Bishop Siward resigned his
bishopric from infirmity, and retired to Abingdon; upon which Archbishop Edsy resumed the bishopric; and
he died within eight weeks of this, on the tenth day before the calends of November.
((A.D. 1048. This year was the severe winter: and this year died Alwyn, Bishop of Winchester, and Bishop
Stigand was raised to his see. And before that, in the same year, died Grinketel, Bishop in Sussex, and Heca
the priest succeeded to the bishopric. And Sweyn also sent hither, begging assistance against Magnus, King
of Norway; that fifty ships should be sent to his aid. But it seemed unadvisable to all people: and it was then
hindered by reason that Magnus had a great shipforce. And he then drove out Sweyn, and with much
manslaying won the land: and the Danes paid him much money and acknowledged him as king. And that
same year Magnus died. In this year King Edward appointed Robert, of London, Archbishop of Canterbury,
during Lent. And in the same Lent he went to Rome after his pall: and the king gave the bishopric of London
to Sparhafoc, Abbot of Abingdon; and the king gave the abbacy of Abingdon to Bishop Rodulf, his kinsman.
Then came the archbishop from Rome one day before St. Peter's mass eve, and entered on his
archiepiscopal see at Christ's Church on St. Peter's massday; and soon after went to the king. Then came
Abbot Sparhafoc to him with the king's writ and seal, in order that he should consecrate him Bishop of
London. Then the archbishop refused, and said that the pope had forbidden it him. Then went the abbot to the
archbishop again for that purpose, and there desired episcopal ordination; and the archbishop constantly
refused him, and said that the pope had forbidden it him. Then went the abbot to London, and occupied the
bishopric which the king before had granted him, with his full leave, all the summer and the harvest. And
then came Eustace [Earl of Boulogne] from beyond sea soon after the bishop, and went to the king, and spoke
with him that which he then would, and went then homeward. When he came to Canterbury, east, then took
he refreshment there, and his men, and went to Dover. When he was some mile or more, on this side of
Dover, then he put on his breastplate, and so did all his companions, and went to Dover. When they came
thither, then would they lodge themselves where they chose. Then came one of his men, and would abide in
the house of a householder against his will, and wounded the householder; and the householder slew the
other. Then Eustace got upon his horse, and his companions upon theirs; and they went to the householder,
and slew him within his own dwelling; and they went up towards the town, and slew, as well within as
without, more than twenty men. And the townsmen slew nineteen men on the other side, and wounded they
knew not how many. And Eustace escaped with a few men, and went again to the king, and made known to
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 69
Page No 72
him, in part, how they had fared. And the king became very wroth with the townsmen. And the king sent off
Godwin the earl, and bade him go into Kent in a hostile manner to Dover: for Eustace had made it appear to
the king, that it had been more the fault of the townsmen than his: but it was not so. And the earl would not
consent to the inroad, because he was loth to injure his own people. Then the king sent after all his council,
and bade them come to Gloucester, nigh the aftermass of St. Mary. Then had the Welshmen erected a castle
in Herefordshire among the people of Sweyn the earl, and wrought every kind of harm and disgrace to the
king's men there about which they could. Then came Godwin the earl, and Sweyn the earl, and Harold the
earl, together at Beverstone, and many men with them, in order that they might go to their royal lord, and to
all the peers who were assembled with him, in order that they might have the advice of the king and his aid,
and of all this council, how they might avenge the king's disgrace, and the whole nation's. Then were the
Welshmen with the king beforehand, and accused the earls, so that they might not come within his eyes'
sight; because they said that they were coming thither in order to betray the king. Thither had come Siward
the earl [Of Northumbria] and Leofric the earl [Of Mercia], and much people with them, from the north, to
the king; and it was made known to the Earl Godwin and his sons, that the king and the men who were with
him, were taking counsel concerning them: and they arrayed themselves on the other hand resolutely, though
it were loathful to them that they should stand against their royal lord. Then the peers on either side decreed
that every kind of evil should cease: and the king gave the peace of God and his full friendship to either side.
Then the king and his peers decreed that a council of all the nobles should be held for the second time in
London at the harvest equinox; and the king directed the army to be called out, as well south of the Thames
as north, all that was in any way most eminent. Then declared they Sweyn the earl an outlaw, and summoned
Godwin the earl and Harold the earl, to the council, as quickly as they could effect it. When they had come
thither, then were they summoned into the council. Then required he safe conduct and hostages, so that he
might come, unbetrayed, into the council and out of the council. Then the king demanded all the thanes
whom the earls before had: and they granted them all into his hands. Then the king sent again to them, and
commanded them that they should come with twelve men to the king's council. Then the earl again required
safe conduct and hostages, that he might defend himself against each of those things which were laid to him.
Then were the hostages refused him; and he was allowed a safe conduct for five nights to go out of the land.
And then Godwin the earl and Sweyn the earl went to Bosham, and shoved out their ships, and betook
themselves beyond sea, and sought Baldwin's protection, and abode there all the winter. And Harold the earl
went west to Ireland, and was there all the winter within the king's protection. And soon after this happened,
then put away the king the lady who had been consecrated his queen [Editha], and caused to be taken from
her all which she possessed, in land, and in gold, and in silver, and in all things, and delivered her to his sister
at Wherwell. And Abbot Sparhafoc was then driven out of the bishopric of London, and William the king's
priest was ordained thereto. And then Odda was appointed earl over Devonshire, and over Somerset, and over
Dorset, and over the Welsh. And Algar, the son of Leofric the earl, was appointed to the earldom which
Harold before held.))
A.D. 1049. (62) This year the emperor gathered an innumerable army against Baldwin of Bruges, because he
had destroyed the palace of Nimeguen, and because of many other ungracious acts that he did against him.
The army was immense that he had collected together. There was Leo, the Pope of Rome, and the patriarch,
and many other great men of several provinces. He sent also to King Edward, and requested of him naval aid,
that he might not permit him to escape from him by water. Whereupon he went to Sandwich, and lay there
with a large naval armament, until the emperor had all that he wished of Baldwin. Thither also came back
again Earl Sweyne, who had gone from this land to Denmark, and there ruined his cause with the Danes. He
came hither with a pretence, saying that he would again submit to the king, and be his man; and he requested
Earl Beorn to be of assistance to him, and give him land to feed him on. But Harold, his brother, and Earl
Beorn resisted, and would give him nothing of that which the king had given them. The king also refused him
everything. Whereupon Swevne retired to his ships at Bosham. Then, after the settlement between the
emperor and Baldwin, many ships went home, and the king remained behind Sandwich with a few ships. Earl
Godwin also sailed fortytwo ships from Sandwich to Pevensey, and Earl Beorn went with him. Then the
king gave leave to all the Mercians to return home, and they did so. Then it was told the king that Osgod lay
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 70
Page No 73
at Ulps with thirtynine ships; whereupon the king sent after the ships that he might dispatch, which before
had gone homewards, but still lay at the Nore. Then Osgod fetched his wife from Bruges; and they went back
again with six ships; but the rest went towards Essex, to Eadulf'sness, and there plundered, and then
returned to their ships. But there came upon them a strong wind, so that they were all lost but four persons,
who were afterwards slain beyond sea. Whilst Earl Godwin and Earl Beorn lay at Pevensey with their ships,
came Earl Sweyne, and with a pretence requested of Earl Beorn, who was his uncle's son, that he would be
his companion to the king at Sandwich, and better his condition with him; adding, that he would swear oaths
to him, and be faithful to him. Whereupon Beorn concluded, that he would not for their relationship betray
him. He therefore took three companions with him, and they rode to Bosham, where his (63) ships lay, as
though they should proceed to Sandwich; but they suddenly bound him, and led him to the ships, and went
thence with him to Dartmouth, where they ordered him to be slain and buried deep. He was afterwards found,
and Harold his cousin fetched him thence, and led him to Winchester, to the old minster, where he buried him
with King Knute, his uncle. Then the king and all the army proclaimed Sweyne an outlaw. A little before this
the men of Hastings and thereabout fought his two ships with their ships, and slew all the men, and brought
the ships to Sandwich to the king. Eight ships had he, ere he betrayed Beorn; afterwards they all forsook him
except two; whereupon he went eastward to the land of Baldwin, and sat there all the winter at Bruges, in full
security. In the same year came up from Ireland thirtysix ships on the Welsh coast, and thereabout
committed outrages, with the aid of Griffin, the Welsh king. The people were soon gathered against them,
and there was also with them Bishop Eldred, but they had too little assistance, and the enemy came unawares
on them very early in the morning, and slew on the spot many good men; but the others burst forth with the
bishop. This was done on the fourth day before the calends of August. This year died the good Bishop Ednoth
in Oxfordshire; and Oswy, Abbot of Thomey; and Wulfnoth, Abbot of Westminster; and King Edward gave
the bishopric which Ednoth had to Ulf his priest, but it ill betided him; and he was driven from it, because he
did nought like a bishop therein, so that it shameth us now to say more. Bishop Siward also died who lies at
Abingdon. In this same year King Edward put nine ships out of pay; and the crews departed, and went away
with the ships withal, leaving five ships only behind, for whom the king ordered twelve months pay. The
same year went Bishops Hereman and Aldred to the pope at Rome on the king's errand. This year was also
consecrated the great minster at Rheims, in the presence of Pope Leo and the emperor. There was also a great
synod at St. Remy; (64) at which was present Pope Leo, with the Archbishops of Burgundy, of Besancon, of
Treves, and of Rheims; and many wise men besides, both clergy and laity. A great synod there held they
respecting the service of God, at the instance of St. Leo the pope. It is difficult to recognise all the bishops
that came thither, and also abbots. King Edward sent thither Bishop Dudoc, and Abbot Wulfric, of St.
Augustine's, and Elfwin, Abbot of Ramsey, with the intent that they should report to the king what was
determined there concerning Christendom. This same year came Earl Sweyne into England.
((A.D. 1049. This year Sweyn came again to Denmark, and Harold. uncle of Magnus, went to Norway after
Magnus was dead; and the Normans acknowledged him: and he sent hither to land concerning peace. And
Sweyn also sent from Denmark, and begged of King Edward the aid of his ships. They were to be at least
fifty ships: but all people opposed it. And this year also there was an earthquake, on the kalends of May, in
many places in Worcester, and in Wick, and in Derby, and elsewhere; and also there was a great mortality
among men, and murrain among cattle: and moreover, the wildfire did much evil in Derbyshire and
elsewhere.))
A.D. 1050. This year returned the bishops home from Rome; (65) and Earl Sweyne had his sentence of
outlawry reversed. The same year died Edsy, Archbishop of Canterbury, on the fourth day before the calends
of November; and also in the same year Elfric, Archbishop of York, on the eleventh before the calends of
February, a very venerable man and wise, and his body lies at Peterborough. Then had King Edward a
meeting of the great council in London, in midlent, at which he appointed Robert the Frank, who was before
Bishop of London, Archbishop of Canterbury; and he, during the same Lent, went to Rome after his pall. The
king meanwhile gave the see of London to Sparhawk, Abbot of Abingdon, but it was taken from him again
before he was consecrated. The king also gave the abbacy of Abingdon to Bishop Rodulph his cousin. The
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 71
Page No 74
same year he put all the lightermen out of pay. (66) The pope held a council again, at Vercelli; and Bishop
Ulf came thither, where he nearly had his staff broken, had he not paid more money, because he could not
perform his duties so well as he should do. The same year King Edward abolished the Danegeld which King
Ethelred imposed. That was in the thirtyninth year after it had begun. That tribute harassed all the people of
England so long as is above written; and it was always paid before other imposts, which were levied
indiscriminately, and vexed men variously.
((A.D. 1050. Thither also came Sweyn the earl, who before had gone from this land to Denmark, and who
there had ruined himself with the Danes. He came thither with false pretences; saying that he would again be
obedient to the king. And Beorn the earl promised him that he would be of assistance to him. Then, after the
reconciliation of the emperor and of Baldwin, many of the ships went home, and the king remained behind at
Sandwich with a few ships; and Godwin the earl also went with fortytwo ships from Sandwich to Pevensey,
and Beorn the earl went with him. Then was it made known to the king that Osgood lay at Ulps with
thirtynine ships; and the king then sent after the ships which before had gone home, that he might send after
him. And Osgod fetched his wife from Bruges, and they went back again with six ships. And the others
landed in Sussex [Essex] at Eadulfness, and there did harm, and went again to their ships: and then a strong
wind came against them, so that they were all destroyed, except four, whose crews were slain beyond sea.
While Godwin the earl and Beorn the earl lay at Pevensey, then came Sweyn the earl, and begged Beorn the
earl, with fraud, who was his uncle's son, that he would be his companion to the king at Sandwich, and better
his affairs with him. He went then, on account of the relationship, with three companions, with him; and he
led him then towards Bosham, where his ships lay: and then they bound him, and led him on shipboard.
Then went he thence with him to Dartmouth, and there ordered him to be slain, and deeply buried.
Afterwards he was found, and borne to Winchester, and buried with king Canute his uncle. A little before
that, the men of Hastings and thereabout, fought two of his ships with their ships; and slew all the men, and
brought the ships to Sandwich to the king. Eight ships he had before he betrayed Beorn; after that all forsook
him except two. In the same year arrived in the Welsh Axa, from Ireland, thirtysix ships, and thereabout did
harm, with the help of Griffin the Welsh king. The people were gathered together against them; Bishop
Aldred [Of Worchester] was also there with them; but they had too little power. And they came unawares
upon them at very early morn; and there they slew many good men, and the others escaped with the bishop:
this was done on the fourth before the kalends of August. This year died, in Oxfordshire, Oswy, Abbot of
Thorney, and Wulfnoth, Abbot of Westminster; and Ulf the priest was appointed as pastor to the bishopric
which Eadnoth had held; but he was after that driven away; because he did nothing bishoplike therein: so
that it shameth us now to tell more about it. And Bishop Siward died: he lieth at Abingdon. And this year was
consecrated the great minster at Rheims: there was Pope Leo [IX.] and the emperor [Henry III]; and there
they held a great synod concerning God's service. St. Leo the pope presided at the synod: it is difficult to have
a knowledge of the bishops who came there, and how many abbots: and hence, from this land were sent two
from St. Augustine's and from Ramsey.))
A.D. 1051. This year came Archbishop Robert hither over sea with his pall from Rome, one day before St.
Peter's eve: and he took his archiepiscopal seat at Christchurch on St. Peter's day, and soon after this went to
the king. Then came Abbot Sparhawk to him with the king's writ and seal, to the intent that he should
consecrate him Bishop oœ London; but the archbishop refused, saying that the pope had forbidden him. Then
went the abbot to the archbishop again for the same purpose, and there demanded episcopal consecration; but
the archbishop obstinately refused, repeating that the pope had forbidden him. Then went the abbot to
London, and sat at the bishopric which the king had before given him, with his full leave, all the summer and
the autumn. Then during the same year came Eustace, who had the sister of King Edward to wife, from
beyond sea, soon after the bishop, and went to the king; and having spoken with him whatever he chose, he
then went homeward. When he came to Canterbury eastward, there took he a repast, and his men; whence he
proceeded to Dover. When he was about a mile or more on this side Dover, he put on his breastplate; and so
did all his companions: and they proceeded to Dover. When they came thither, they resolved to quarter
themselves wherever they lived. Then came one of his men, and would lodge at the house of a master of a
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 72
Page No 75
family against his will; but having wounded the master of the house, he was slain by the other. Then was
Eustace quickly upon his horse, and his companions upon theirs; and having gone to the master of the family,
they slew him on his own hearth; then going up to the boroughward, they slew both within and without more
than twenty men. The townsmen slew nineteen men on the other side, and wounded more, but they knew not
how many. Eustace escaped with a few men, and went again to the king, telling him partially how they had
fared. The king was very wroth with the townsmen, and sent off Earl Godwin, bidding him go into Kent with
hostility to Dover. For Eustace had told the king that the guilt of the townsmen was greater than his. But it
was not so: and the earl would not consent to the expedition, because he was loth to destroy his own people.
Then sent the king after all his council, and bade them come to Gloucester nigh the aftermass of St. Mary.
Meanwhile Godwin took it much to heart, that in his earldom such a thing should happen. Whereupon be
began to gather forces over all his earldom, and Earl Sweyne, his son, over his; and Harold, his other son,
over his earldom: and they assembled all in Gloucestershire, at Langtree, a large and innumerable army, all
ready for battle against the king; unless Eustace and his men were delivered to them handcuffed, and also the
Frenchmen that were in the castle. This was done seven nights before the latter mass of St. Mary, when King
Edward was sitting at Gloucester. Whereupon he sent after Earl Leofric, and north after Earl Siward, and
summoned their retinues. At first they came to him with moderate aid; but when they found how it was in the
south, then sent they north over all their earldom, and ordered a large force to the help of their lord. So did
Ralph also over his earldom. Then came they all to Gloucester to the aid of the king, though it was late. So
unanimous were they all in defence of the king, that they would seek Godwin's army if the king desired it.
But some prevented that; because it was very unwise that they should come together; for in the two armies
was there almost all that was noblest in England. They therefore prevented this, that they might not leave the
land at the mercy of our foes, whilst engaged in a destructive conflict betwixt ourselves. Then it was advised
that they should exchange hostages between them. And they issued proclamations throughout to London,
whither all the people were summoned over all this north end in Siward's earldom, and in Leofric's, and also
elsewhere; and Earl Godwin was to come thither with his sons to a conference; They came as far as
Southwark, and very many with them from Wessex; but his army continually diminished more and more; for
they bound over to the king all the thanes that belonged to Earl Harold his son, and outlawed Earl Sweyne his
other son. When therefore it could not serve his purpose to come to a conference against the king and against
the army that was with him, he went in the night away. In the morning the king held a council, and
proclaimed him an outlaw, with his whole army; himself and his wife, and all his three sons Sweyne and
Tosty and Grith. And he went south to Thorney, (67) with his wife, and Sweyne his son, and Tosty and his
wife, a cousin of Baldwin of Bruges, and his son Grith. Earl Harold with Leofwine went to Bristol in the ship
that Earl Sweyne had before prepared and provisioned for himself; and the king sent Bishop Aldred from
London with his retinue, with orders to overtake him ere he came to ship. But they either could not or would
not: and he then went out from the mouth of the Avon; but he encountered such adverse weather, that he got
off with difficulty, and suffered great loss. He then went forth to Ireland, as soon as the weather permitted. In
the meantime the Welshmen had wrought a castle in Herefordshire, in the territory of Earl Sweyne, and
brought as much injury and disgrace on the king's men thereabout as they could. Then came Earl Godwin,
and Earl Sweyne, and Earl Harold, together at Beverstone, and many men with them; to the intent that they
might go to their natural lord, and to all the peers that were assembled with him; to have the king's counsel
and assistance, and that of all the peers, how they might avenge the insult offered to the king, and to all the
nation. But the Welshmen were before with the king, and bewrayed the earls, so that they were not permitted
to come within the sight of his eyes; for they declared that they intended to come thither to betray the king.
There was now assembled before the king (68) Earl Siward, and Earl Leofric, and much people with them
from the north: and it was told Earl Godwin and his sons, that the king and the men who were with him
would take counsel against them; but they prepared themselves firmly to resist, though they were loth to
proceed against their natural lord. Then advised the peers on either side, that they should abstain from all
hostility: and the king gave God's peace and his full friendship to each party. Then advised the king and his
council, that there should be a second time a general assembly of all the nobles in London, at the autumnal
equinox: and the king ordered out an army both south and north of the Thames, the best that ever was. Then
was Earl Sweyne proclaimed an outlaw; and Earl Godwin and Earl Harold were summoned to the council as
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part IV 73
Page No 76
early as they could come. When they came thither and were cited to the council, then required they security
and hostages, that they might come into the council and go out without treachery. The king then demanded all
the thanes that the earls had; and they put them all into his hands. Then sent the king again to them, and
commanded them to come with twelve men to the king's council. Then desired the earl again security and
hostages, that he might answer singly to each of the things that were laid to his charge. But the hostages were
refused; and a truce of five nights was allowed him to depart from the land. Then went Earl Godwin and Earl
Sweyne to Bosham, and drew out their ships, and went beyond sea, seeking the protection of Baldwin; and
there they abode all the winter. Earl Harold went westward to Ireland, and was there all the winter on the
king's security. It was from Thorney (69) that Godwin and those that were with him went to Bruges, to
Baldwin's land, in one ship, with as much treasure as they could lodge therein for each man. Wonderful
would it have been thought by every man that was then in England, if any person had said before this that it
would end thus! For he was before raised to such a height, that he ruled the king and all England; his sons
were earls, and the king's darlings; and his daughter wedded and united to the king. Soon after this took place,
the king dismissed the lady who had been consecrated his queen, and ordered to be taken from her all that she
had in land, and in gold, and in silver, and in all things; and committed her to the care of his sister at
Wherwell. Soon after came Earl William from beyond sea with a large retinue of Frenchmen; and the king
entertained him and as many of his companions as were convenient to him, and let him depart again. Then
was Abbot Sparhawk driven from his bishopric at London; and William the king's priest was invested
therewith. Then was Oddy appointed earl over Devonshire, and over Somerset, and over Dorset, and over
Wales; and Algar, the son of Earl Leofric, was promoted to the earldom which Harold before possessed.
((A.D. 1051. In this year died Eadsine, Archbishop of Canterbury; and the king gave to Robert the
Frenchman, who before had been Bishop of London, the archbishopric. And Sparhafoc, Abbot of Abingdon,
succeeded to the bishopric of London; and it was afterwards taken from him before he was consecrated. And
Bishop Heroman and Bishop Aldred went to Rome.))
Part V
A.D. 1052. This year, on the second day before the nones of March, died the aged Lady Elfgiva Emma, the
mother of King Edward and of King Hardacnute, the relict of King Ethelred and of King Knute; and her body
lies in the old minster with King Knute. At this time Griffin, the Welsh king, plundered in Herefordshire till
he came very nigh to Leominster; and they gathered against him both the landsmen and the Frenchmen from
the castle; and there were slain very many good men of the English, and also of the French. This was on the
same day thirteen years after that Edwin was slain with his companions. In the same year advised the king
and his council, that ships should be sent out to Sandwich, and that Earl Ralph and Earl Odda should be
appointed headmen thereto. Then went Earl Godwin out from Bruges with his ships to Ysendyck; and sailed
forth one day before midsummereve, till he came to the Ness that is to the south of Romney. When it came
to the knowledge of the earls out at Sandwich, they went out after the other ships; and a landforce was also
ordered out against the ships. Meanwhile Earl Godwin had warning, and betook himself into Pevensey: and
the weather was so boisterous, that the earls could not learn what had become of Earl Godwin. But Earl
Godwin then went out again until he came back to Bruges; and the other ships returned back again to
Sandwich. Then it was advised that the ships should go back again to London, and that other earls and other
pilots should be appointed over them. But it was delayed so long that the marine army all deserted; and they
all betook themselves home. When Earl Godwin understood that, he drew up his sail and his ship: and they
(70) went west at once to the Isle of Wight; and landing there, they plundered so long that the people gave
them as much as they required of them. Then proceeded they westward until they came to Portland, where
they landed and did as much harm as they could possibly do. Meanwhile Harold had gone out from Ireland
with nine ships, and came up at Potlock with his ships to the mouth of the Severn, near the boundaries of
Somerset and Devonshire, and there plundered much. The landfolk collected against him, both from
Somerset and from Devonshire: but he put them to flight, and slew there more than thirty good thanes,
besides others; and went soon after about Penwithstert, where was much people gathered against him; but he
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 74
Page No 77
spared not to provide himself with meat, and went up and slew on the spot a great number of the people
seizing in cattle, in men, and in money, whatever he could. Then went he eastward to his father; and they
went both together eastward (71) until they came to the Isle of Wight, where they seized whatever had been
left them before. Thence they went to Pevensey, and got out with them as many ships as had gone in there,
and so proceeded forth till they came to the Ness; (72) getting all the ships that were at Romney, and at Hithe,
and at Folkstone. Then ordered King Edward to fit out forty smacks that lay at Sandwich many weeks, to
watch Earl Godwin, who was at Bruges during the winter; but he nevertheless came hither first to land, so as
to escape their notice. And whilst he abode in this land, he enticed to him all the Kentish men, and all the
boatmen from Hastings, and everywhere thereabout by the seacoast, and all the men of Essex and Sussex
and Surrey, and many others besides. Then said they all that they would with him live or die. When the fleet
that lay at Sandwich had intelligence about Godwin's expedition, they set sail after him; but he escaped them,
and betook himself wherever he might: and the fleet returned to Sandwich, and so homeward to London.
When Godwin understood that the fleet that lay at Sandwich was gone home, then went he back again to the
Isle of Wight, and lay thereabout by the seacoast so long that they came together he and his son Earl
Harold. But they did no great harm after they came together; save that they took meat, and enticed to them all
the landfolk by the sea coast and also upward in the land. And they proceeded toward Sandwich, ever
alluring forth with them all the boatmen that they met; and to Sandwich they came with an increasing army.
They then steered eastward round to Dover, and landing there, took as many ships and hostages as they
chose, and so returned to Sandwich, where they did the same; and men everywhere gave them hostages and
provisions, wherever they required them. Then proceeded they to the Nore, and so toward London; but some
of the ships landed on the Isle of Shepey, and did much harm there; whence they steered to Milton Regis, and
burned it all, and then proceeded toward London after the earls. When they came to London, there lay the
king and all his earls to meet them, with fifty ships. The earls (73) then sent to the king, praying that they
might be each possessed of those things which had been unjustly taken from them. But the king resisted some
while; so long that the people who were with the earl were very much stirred against the king and against his
people, so that the earl himself with difficulty appeased them. When King Edward understood that, then sent
he upward after more aid; but they came very late. And Godwin stationed himself continually before London
with his fleet, till he came to Southwark; where he abode some time, until the flood (74) came up. On this
occasion he also contrived with the burgesses that they should do almost all that he would. When he had
arranged his whole expedition, then came the flood; and they soon weighed anchor, and steered through the
bridge by the south side. The landforce meanwhile came above, and arranged themselves by the Strand; and
they formed an angle with the ships against the north side, as if they wished to surround the king's ships. The
king had also a great land force on his side, to add to his shipmen: but they were most of them loth to fight
with their own kinsmen for there was little else of any great importance but Englishmen on either side;
and they were also unwilling that this land should be the more exposed to outlandish people, because they
destroyed each other. Then it was determined that wise men should be sent between them, who should settle
peace on either side. Godwin went up, and Harold his son, and their navy, as many as they then thought
proper. Then advanced Bishop Stigand with God's assistance, and the wise men both within the town and
without; who determined that hostages should be given on either side. And so they did. When Archbishop
Robert and the Frenchmen knew that, they took horse; and went some west to Pentecost Castle, some north to
Robert's castle. Archbishop Robert and Bishop Ulf, with their companions, went out at Eastgate, slaying or
else maiming many young men, and betook themselves at once to Eadulf'sness; where he put himself on
board a crazy ship, and went at once over sea, leaving his pall and all Christendom here on land, as God
ordained, because he had obtained an honour which God disclaimed. Then was proclaimed a general council
without London; and all the earls and the best men in the land were at the council. There took up Earl
Godwin his burthen, and cleared himself there before his lord King Edward, and before all the nation;
proving that he was innocent of the crime laid to his charge, and to his son Harold and all his children. And
the king gave the earl and his children, and all the men that were with him, his full friendship, and the full
earldom, and all that he possessed before; and he gave the lady all that she had before. Archbishop Robert
was fully proclaimed an outlaw, with all the Frenchmen; because they chiefly made the discord between Earl
Godwin and the king: and Bishop Stigand succeeded to the archbishopric at Canterbury. At the council
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 75
Page No 78
therefore they gave Godwin fairly his earldom, so full and so free as he at first possessed it; and his sons also
all that they formerly had; and his wife and his daughter so full and so free as they formerly had. And they
fastened full friendship between them, and ordained good laws to all people. Then they outlawed all
Frenchmen who before instituted bad laws, and judged unrighteous judgment, and brought bad counsels
into this land except so many as they concluded it was agreeable to the king to have with him, who were
true to him and to all his people. It was with difficulty that Bishop Robert, and Bishop William, and Bishop
Ulf, escaped with the Frenchmen that were with them, and so went over sea. Earl Godwin, and Harold, and
the queen, sat in their stations. Sweyne had before gone to Jerusalem from Bruges, and died on his way home
at Constantinople, at Michaelmas. It was on the Monday after the festival of St. Mary, that Godwin came
with his ships to Southwark: and on the morning afterwards, on the Tuesday, they were reconciled as it stands
here before recorded. Godwin then sickened soon after he came up, and returned back. But he made
altogether too little restitution of God's property, which he acquired from many places. At the same time
Arnwy, Abbot of Peterborough, resigned his abbacy in full health; and gave it to the monk Leofric, with the
king's leave and that of the monks; and the Abbot Arnwy lived afterwards eight winters. The Abbot Leofric
gilded the minster, so that it was called Gildenborough; and it then waxed very much in land, and in gold, and
in silver.
((A.D. 1052. This year died Alfric, Archbishop of York, a very pious man, and wise. And in the same year
King Edward abolished the tribute, which King Ethelred had before imposed: that was in the
nineandthirtieth year after he had begun it. That tax distressed all the English nation during so long a time,
as it has been written; that was ever before other taxes which were variously paid, and wherewith the people
were manifestly distressed. In the same year Eustace [Earl of Boulougne] landed at Dover: he had King
Edward's sister to wife. Then went his men inconsiderately after quarters, and a certain man of the town they
slew; and another man of the town their companion; so that there lay seven of his companions. And much
harm was there done on either side, by horse and also by weapons, until the people gathered together: and
then they fled away until they came to the king at Gloucester; and he gave them protection. When Godwin,
the earl, understood that such things should have happened in his earldom, then began he to gather together
people over all his earldom, (75) and Sweyn, the earl, his son, over his, and Harold, his other son, over his
earldom; and they all drew together in Gloucestershire, at Langtree, a great force and countless, all ready for
battle against the king, unless Eustace were given up, and his men placed in their hands, and also the
Frenchmen who were in the castle. This was done seven days before the latter mass of St. Mary. Then was
King Edward sitting at Gloucester. Then sent he after Leofric the earl [Of Mercia] and north after Siward the
earl [Of Northumbria] and begged their forces. And then they came to him; first with a moderate aid, but after
they knew how it was there, in the south, then sent they north over all their earldoms, and caused to be
ordered out a large force for the help of their lord; and Ralph, also, over his earldom: and then came they all
to Gloucester to help the king, though it might be late. Then were they all so united in opinion with the king
that they would have sought out Godwin's forces if the king had so willed. Then thought some of them that it
would be a great folly that they should join battle; because there was nearly all that was most noble in
England in the two armies, and they thought that they should expose the land to our foes, and cause great
destruction among ourselves. Then counselled they that hostages should be given mutually; and they
appointed a term at London, and thither the people were ordered out over all this north end, in Siward's
earldom, and in Leofric's, and also elsewhere; and Godwin, the earl, and his sons were to come there with
their defence. Then came they to Southwark, and a great multitude with them, from Wessex; but his band
continually diminished the longer he stayed. And they exacted pledges for the king from all the thanes who
were under Harold, the earl, his son; and then they outlawed Sweyn, the earl, his other son. Then did it not
suit him to come with a defence to meet the king, and to meet the army which was with him. Then went he by
night away; and the king on the morrow held a council, and, together with all the army, declared him an
outlaw, him and all his sons. And he went south to Thorney, and his wife, and Sweyn his son, and Tosty and
his wife, Baldwin's relation of Bruges, and Grith his son. And Harold, the earl, and Leofwine, went to Bristol
in the ship which Sweyn, the earl, had before got ready for himself, and provisioned. And the king sent
Bishop Aldred [Of Worcester] to London with a force; and they were to overtake him ere he came on
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 76
Page No 79
shipboard: but they could not or they would not. And he went out from Avonmouth, and met with such
heavy weather that he with difficulty got away; and there he sustained much damage. Then went he forth to
Ireland when fit weather came. And Godwin, and those who were with him, went from Thorney to Bruges, to
Baldwin's land, in one ship, with as much treasure as they might therein best stow for each man. It would
have seemed wondrous to every man who was in England if any one before that had said that it should end
thus; for he had been erewhile to that degree exalted, as if he ruled the king and all England; and his sons
were earls and the king's darlings, and his daughter wedded and united to the king: she was brought to
Wherwell, and they delivered her to the abbess. Then, soon, came William, the earl [Of Normandy], from
beyond seas with a great band of Frenchmen; and the king received him, and as many of his companions as it
pleased him; and let him away again. This same year was given to William, the priest, the bishopric of
London, which before had been given to Sparhafoc.))
((A.D. 1052. This year died Elfgive, the lady, relict of King Ethelred and of King Canute, on the second
before the nones of March. In the same year Griffin, the Welsh king, plundered in Herefordshire, until he
came very nigh to Leominster; and they gathered against him, as well the landsmen as the Frenchmen of the
castle, and there were slain of the English very many good men, and also of the Frenchmen; that was on the
same day, on which, thirteen years before, Eadwine had been slain by his companions.))
((A.D. 1052. In this year died Elgive Emma, King Edward's mother and King Hardecanute's. And in this
same year, the king decreed, and his council, that ships should proceed to Sandwich; and they set Ralph, the
earl. and Odda, the earl [Of Devon], as headmen thereto. Then Godwin, the earl, went out from Bruges with
his ships to Ysendyck, and left it one day before Midsummer'smass eve, so that he came to Ness, which is
south of Romney. Then came it to the knowledge of the earls out at Sandwich; and they then went out after
the other ships, and a landforce was ordered out against the ships. Then during this, Godwin, the earl, was
warned, and then he went to Pevensey; and the weather was very severe, so that the earls could not learn what
was become of Godwin, the earl. And then Godwin, the earl, went out again, until he came once more to
Bruges; and the other ships returned again to Sandwich. And then it was decreed that the ships should return
once more to London, and that other earls and commanders should be appointed to the ships. Then was it
delayed so long that the shipforce all departed, and all of them went home. When Godwin, the earl, learned
that, then drew he up his sail, and his fleet, and then went west direct to the Isle of Wight, and there landed
and ravaged so long there, until the people yielded them so much as they laid on them. And then they went
westward until they came to Portland, and there they landed, and did whatsoever harm they were able to do.
Then was Harold come out from Ireland with nine ships; and then landed at Porlock, and there much people
was gathered against him; but he failed not to procure himself provisions. He proceeded further, and slew
there a great number of the people, and took of cattle, and of men, and of property as it suited him. He then
went eastward to his father; and then they both went eastward until they came to the Isle of Wight, and there
took that which was yet remaining for them. And then they went thence to Pevensey and got away thence as
many ships as were there fit for service, and so onwards until he came to Ness, and got all the ships which
were in Romney, and in Hythe, and in Folkstone. And then they went east to Dover, and there landed, and
there took ships and hostages, as many as they would, and so went to Sandwich and did "hand" the same; and
everywhere hostages were given them, and provisions wherever they desired. And then they went to North
mouth, and so toward London; and some of the ships went within Sheppey, and there did much harm, and
went their way to King's Milton, and that they all burned, and betook themselves then toward London after
the earls. When they came to London, there lay the king and all the earls there against them, with fifty ships.
Then the earls sent to the king, and required of him, that they might be held worthy of each of those things
which had been unjustly taken from them. Then the king, however, resisted some while; so long as until the
people who were with the earl were much stirred against the king and against his people, so that the earl
himself with difficulty stilled the people. Then Bishop Stigand interposed with God's help, and the wise men
as well within the town as without; and they decreed that hostages should be set forth on either side: and thus
was it done. When Archbishop Robert and the Frenchmen learned that, they took their horses and went, some
west to Pentecost's castle, some north to Robert's castle. And Archbishop Robert and Bishop Ulf went out at
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 77
Page No 80
Eastgate, and their companions, and slew and otherwise injured many young men, and went their way to
direct Eadulf'sness; and he there put himself in a crazy ship, and went direct over sea, and left his pall and
all Christendom here on land, so as God would have it, inasmuch as he had before obtained the dignity so as
God would not have it. Then there was a great council proclaimed without London: and all the earls and the
chief men who were in this land were at the council. There Godwin bore forth his defence, and justified
himself, before King Edward his lord, and before all people of the land, that he was guiltless of that which
was laid against him, and against Harold his son, and all his children. And the king gave to the earl and his
children his full friendship, and full earldom, and all that he before possessed, and to all the men who were
with him. And the king gave to the lady [Editha] all that she before possessed. And they declared Archbishop
Robert utterly an outlaw, and all the Frenchmen, because they had made most of the difference between
Godwin, the earl, and the king. And Bishop Stigand obtained the Archbishopric of Canterbury. In this same
time Arnwy, Abbot of Peterborough, left the abbacy, in sound health, and gave it to Leofric the monk, by
leave of the king and of the monks; and Abbot Arnwy lived afterwards eight years. And Abbot Leofric then
(enriched) the minster, so that it was called the Goldenborough. Then it waxed greatly, in land, and in gold,
and in silver.))
((A.D. 1052. And went so to the Isle of Wight, and there took all the ships which could be of any service, and
hostages, and betook himself so eastward. And Harold had landed with nine ships at Porlock, and slew there
much people, and took cattle, and men, and property, and went his way eastward to his father, and they both
went to Romney, to Hythe, to Folkstone, to Dover, to Sandwich, and ever they took all the ships which they
found, which could be of any service, and hostages, all as they proceeded; and went then to London.))
A.D. 1053. About this time was the great wind, on the massnight of St. Thomas; which did much harm
everywhere. And all the midwinter also was much wind. It was this year resolved to slay Rees, the Welsh
king's brother, because he did harm; and they brought his head to Gloucester on the eve of Twelfthday. In
this same year, before Allhallowmas, died Wulfsy, Bishop of Lichfield; and Godwin, Abbot of Winchcomb;
and Aylward, Abbot of Glastonbury; all within one month. And Leofwine, Abbot of Coventry, took to the
bishopric at Lichfield; Bishop Aldred to the abbacy at Winchcomb; and Aylnoth took to the abbacy at
Glastonbury. The same year died Elfric, brother of Odda, at Deerhurst; and his body resteth at Pershore. In
this year was the king at Winchester, at Easter; and Earl Godwin with him, and Earl Harold his son, and
Tosty. On the day after Easter sat he with the king at table; when he suddenly sunk beneath against the
footrail, deprived of speech and of all his strength. He was brought into the king's chamber; and they
supposed that it would pass over: but it was not so. He continued thus speechless and helpless till the
Thursday; when he resigned his life, on the seventeenth before the calends of May; and he was buried at
Winchester in the old minster. Earl Harold, his son, took to the earldom that his father had before, and to all
that his father possessed; whilst Earl Elgar took to the earldom that Harold had before. The Welshmen this
year slew a great many of the warders of the English people at Westbury. This year there was no archbishop
in this land: but Bishop Stigand held the see of Canterbury at Christ church, and Kinsey that of York.
Leofwine and Wulfwy went over sea, and had themselves consecrated bishops there. Wulfwy took to the
bishopric which Ulf had whilst he was living and in exile.
((A.D. 1053. This year was the great wind on Thomas'smass night, and also the whole midwinter there was
much wind; and it was decreed that Rees, the Welsh king's brother, should be slain, because he had done
harm; and his head was brought to Gloucester on Twelfthday eve. And the same year, before All
Hallowsmass, died Wulfsy, Bishop of Lichfield, and Godwin, Abbot of Winchcomb, and Egelward, Abbot
of Clastonbury, all within one month, and Leofwine succeeded to the Bishopric of Lichfield, and Bishop
Aidred [Of Worcester] took the abbacy at Winchcomb, and Egelnoth succeeded to the abbacy at Glastonbury.
And the same year died Elfric, Odda's brother at Deorhurst; and his body resteth at Pershore. And the same
year died Godwin the earl; and he fell ill as he sat with the king at Winchester. And Harold his son succeeded
to the earldom which his father before held; and Elgar, the earl, succeeded to the earldom which Harold
before held.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 78
Page No 81
((A.D. 1053. In this year died Godwin, the earl, on the seventeenth before the kalends of May, and he is
buried at Winchester, in the Oldminster; and Harold, the earl, his son, succeeded to the earldom, and to all
that which his father had held: and Elgar, the earl, succeeded to the earldom which Harold before held.))
A.D. 1054. This year died Leo the holy pope, at Rome: and Victor was chosen pope in his stead. And in this
year was so great loss of cattle as was not remembered for many winters before. This year went Earl Siward
with a large army against Scotland, consisting both of marines and landforces; and engaging with the Scots,
he put to flight the King Macbeth; slew all the best in the land; and led thence much spoil, such as no man
before obtained. Many fell also on his side, both Danish and English; even his own son, Osborn, and his
sister's son, Sihward: and many of his housecarls, and also of the king's, were there slain that day, which
was that of the Seven Sleepers. This same year went Bishop Aldred south over sea into Saxony, to Cologne,
on the king's errand; where he was entertained with great respect by the emperor, abode there wellnigh a
year, and received presents not only from the court, but from the Bishop of Cologne and the emperor. He
commissioned Bishop Leofwine to consecrate the minster at Evesham; and it was consecrated in the same
year, on the sixth before the ides of October. This year also died Osgod Clapa suddenly in his bed, as he lay
at rest.
((A.D. 1054. This year went Siward the earl with a great army into Scotland, both with a shipforce and with
a landforce, and fought against the Scots, and put to flight King Macbeth, and slew all who were the chief
men in the land, and led thence much booty, such as no man before had obtained. But his son Osborn, and his
sister's son Siward, and some of his housecarls, and also of the king's, were there slain, on the day of the
Seven Sleepers. The same year went Bishop Aldred to Cologne, over sea, on the king's errand; and he was
there received with much worship by the emperor [Henry III], and there he dwelt well nigh a year; and either
gave him entertainment, both the Bishop of Cologne and the emperor. And he gave leave to Bishop Leofwine
[Of Lichfield] to consecrate the minster at Evesham on the sixth before the ides of October. In this year died
Osgod suddenly in his bed. And this year died St. Leo the pope; and Victor was chosen pope in his stead.))
A.D. 1055. This year died Earl Siward at York; and his body lies within the minster at Galmanho, (76) which
he had himself ordered to be built and consecrated, in the name of God and St. O1ave, to the honour of God
and to all his saints. Archbishop Kinsey fetched his pall from Pope Victor. Then, within a little time after, a
general council was summoned in London, seven nights before midLent; at which Earl Elgar, son of Earl
Leofric, was outlawed almost without any guilt; because it was said against him that he was the betrayer of
the king and of all the people of the land. And he was arraigned thereof before all that were there assembled,
though the crime laid to his charge was unintentional. The king, however, gave the earldom, which Earl
Siward formerly had, to Tosty, son of Earl Godwin. Whereupon Earl Elgar sought Griffin's territory in
NorthWales; whence he went to Ireland, and there gave him a fleet of eighteen ships, besides his own; and
then returned to Wales to King Griffin with the armament, who received him on terms of amity. And they
gathered a great force with the Irishmen and the Welsh: and Earl Ralph collected a great army against them at
the town of Hereford; where they met; but ere there was a spear thrown the English people fled, because they
were on horses. The enemy then made a great slaughter there about four hundred or five hundred men;
they on the other side none. They went then to the town, and burned it utterly; and the large minster (77) also
which the worthy Bishop Athelstan had caused to be built, that they plundered and bereft of relic and of reef,
and of all things whatever; and the people they slew, and led some away. Then an army from all parts of
England was gathered very nigh; (78) and they came to Gloucester: whence they sallied not far out against
the Welsh, and there lay some time. And Earl Harold caused the dike to be dug about the town the while.
Meantime men began to speak of peace; and Earl Harold and those who were with him came to Bilsley,
where amity and friendship were established between them. The sentence of outlawry against Earl Elgar was
reversed; and they gave him all that was taken from him before. The fleet returned to Chester, and there
awaited their pay, which Elgar promised them. The slaughter was on the ninth before the calends of
November. In the same year died Tremerig, the Welsh bishop, soon after the plundering; who was Bishop
Athelstan's substitute, after he became infirm.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 79
Page No 82
((A.D. 1055. In this year died Siward the earl at York, and he lies at Galmanho, in the minster which himself
caused to be built, and consecrated in God's and Olave's name. And Tosty succeeded to the earldom which he
had held. And Archbishop Kynsey [Of York], fetched his pall from Pope Victor. And soon thereafter was
outlawed Elgar the earl, son of Leofric the earl, wellnigh without guilt. But he went to Ireland and to Wales,
and procured himself there a great force, and so went to Hereford: but there came against him Ralph the earl,
with a large army, and with a slight conflict he put them to flight, and much people slew in the flight: and
they went then into Herefordport, and that they ravaged, and burned the great minster which Bishop
Athelstan had built, and slew the priests within the minster, and many in addition thereto, and took all the
treasures therein, and carried them away with them. And when they had done the utmost evil, this counsel
was counselled: that Elgar the earl should be inlawed, and be given his earldom, and all that had been taken
from him. This ravaging happened on the 9th before the Kalends of November. In the same year died
Tremerin the Welsh bishop [Of St. David's] soon after that ravaging: and he was Bishop Athelstan's coadjutor
from the time that he had become infirm.))
((A.D. 1055. In this year died Siward the earl: and then was summoned a general council, seven days before
Midlent; and they outlawed Elgar the earl, because it was cast upon him that he was a traitor to the king and
to all the people of the land. And he made a confession of it before all the men who were there gathered;
though the word escaped him unintentionally. And the king gave the earldom to Tosty, son of Earl Godwin,
which Siward the earl before held. And Elgar the earl sought Griffin's protection in NorthWales. And in this
year Griffin and Elgar burned St. Ethelbert's minster, and all the town of Hereford.))
A.D. 1056. This year Bishop Egelric resigned his bishopric at Durham, and retired to Peterborough minster;
and his brother Egelwine succeeded him. The worthy Bishop Athelstan died on the fourth before the ides of
February; and his body lies at Hereford. To him succeeded Leofgar, who was Earl Harold's mass priest. He
wore his knapsack in his priesthood, until he was a bishop. He abandoned his chrism and his rood his
ghostly weapons and took to his spear and to his sword, after his bishophood; and so marched to the field
against Griffin the Welsh king. (79) But he was there slain, and his priests with him, and Elnoth the sheriff,
and many other good men with them; and the rest fled. This was eight nights before midsummer. Difficult is
it to relate all the vexation and the journeying, the marching and the fatigue, the fall of men, and of horses
also, which the whole army of the English suffered, until Earl Leofric, and Earl Harold, and Bishop Eldred,
came together and made peace between them; so that Griffin swore oaths, that he would be a firm and faithful
viceroy to King Edward. Then Bishop Eldred took to the bishopric which Leofgar had before eleven weeks
and four days. The same year died Cona the emperor; and Earl Odda, whose body lies at Pershore, and who
was admitted a monk before his end; which was on the second before the calends of September; a good man
and virtuous and truly noble.
A.D. 1057. This year came Edward Etheling, son of King Edmund, to this land, and soon after died. His body
is buried within St. Paul's minster at London. He was brother's son to King Edward. King Edmund was called
Ironside for his valour. This etheling King Knute had sent into Hungary, to betray him; but he there grew in
favour with good men, as God granted him, and it well became him; so that he obtained the emperor's cousin
in marriage, and by her had a fair offspring. Her name was Agatha. We know not for what reason it was done,
that he should see his relation, King Edward. Alas! that was a rueful time, and injurious to all this nation
that he ended his life so soon after he came to England, to the misfortune of this miserable people. The same
year died Earl Leofric, on the second before the calends of October; who was very wise before God, and also
before the world; and who benefited all this nation. (80) He lies at Coventry (81): and his son Elgar took to
his territory. This year died Earl Ralph, on the twelfth before the calends of January; and lies at Peterborough.
Also died Bishop Heca, in Sussex; and Egelric was elevated to his see. This year also died Pope Victor; and
Stephen was chosen pope, who was Abbot of Monut Cassino.
((A.D. 1057. In this year Edward Etheling, King Edmund's son, came hither to land, and soon after died and
his body is buried within St. Paul's minster at London. And Pope Victor died, and Stephen [IX.] was chosen
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 80
Page No 83
pope: he was Abbot of MontCassino. And Leofric the earl died, and Elgar his son succeeded to the earldom
which the father before held.))
A.D. 1058. This year was Earl Elgar banished: but he soon came in again by force, through Griffin's
assistance: and a naval armament came from Norway. It is tedious to tell how it all fell out. In this same year
Bishop Aldred consecrated the minster church at Gloucester, which he himself had raised (82) to the honour
of God and St. Peter; and then went to Jerusalem (83) with such dignity as no other man did before him, and
betook himself there to God. A worthy gift he also offered to our Lord's sepulchre; which was a golden
chalice of the value of five marks, of very wonderful workmanship. In the same year died Pope Stephen; and
Benedict was appointed pope. He sent hither the pall to Bishop Stigand; who as archbishop consecrated
Egelric a monk at Christ church, Bishop of Sussex; and Abbot Siward Bishop of Rochester.
((A.D. 1058. This year died Pope Stephen, and Benedict was consecrated pope: the same sent hither to land a
pall to Archbishop Stigand. And in this year died Heca, Bishop of Sussex; and Archbishop Stigand ordained
Algeric, a monk at Christchurch, Bishop of Sussex, and Abbot Siward Bishop of Rochester.))
A.D. 1059. This year was Nicholas chosen pope, who had been Bishop of Florence; and Benedict was
expelled, who was pope before. This year also was consecrated the steeple (84) at Peterborough, on the
sixteenth before the calends of November.
A.D. 1060. This year was a great earthquake on the Translation of St. Martin, and King Henry died in France.
Kinsey, Archbishop of York, died on the eleventh before the calends of January; and he lies at Peterborough.
Bishop Aldred succeeded to the see, and Walter to that of Herefordshire. Dudoc also died, who was Bishop of
Somersetshire; and Gisa the priest was appointed in his stead.
A.D. 1061. This year went Bishop Aldred to Rome after his pall; which he received at the hands of Pope
Nicholas. Earl Tosty and his wife also went to Rome; and the bishop and the earl met with great difficulty as
they returned home. In the same year died Bishop Godwin at St. Martin's, (85) on the seventh before the ides
of March; and in the selfsame year died Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, in the Easterweek, on the
fourteenth before the calends of May. Pope Nicholas also died; and Alexander was chosen pope, who was
Bishop of Lucca. When word came to the king that the Abbot Wulfric was dead, then chose he Ethelsy, a
monk of the old minster, to succeed; who followed Archbishop Stigand, and was consecrated abbot at
Windsor on St. Augustine s massday.
((A.D. 1061. In this year died Dudoc, Bishop of Somerset, and Giso succeeded. And in the same year died
Godwin, Bishop of St. Martin's, on the seventh before the ides of March. And in the selfsame year died
Wulfric, Abbot of St. Augustine's, within the Easter week, on the fourteenth before the kalends of May.
When word came to the king that Abbot Wulfric was departed, then chose he Ethelsy the monk thereto, from
the OldMinster, who then followed Archbishop Stigand, and was consecrated abbot at Windsor, on St.
Augustine's massday.))
A.D. 1063. This year went Earl Harold, after midwinter, from Gloucester to Rhyddlan; which belonged to
Griffin: and that habitation he burned, with his ships and all the rigging belonging thereto; and put him to
flight. Then in the gangdays went Harold with his ships from Bristol about Wales; where he made a truce
with the people, and they gave him hostages. Tosty meanwhile advanced with a landforce against them, and
plundered the land. But in the harvest of the same year was King Griffin slain, on the nones of August, by his
own men, through the war that he waged with Earl Harold. He was king over all the Welsh nation. And his
head was brought to Earl Harold; who sent it to the king, with his ship's head, and the rigging therewith. King
Edward committed the land to his two brothers, Blethgent and Rigwatle; who swore oaths, and gave hostages
to the king and to the earl, that they would be faithful to him in all things, ready to aid him everywhere by
water and land, and would pay him such tribute from the land as was paid long before to other kings.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 81
Page No 84
((A.D. 1063. This year went Harold the earl, and his brother Tosty the earl, as well with a landforce as a
shipforce, into Wales, and they subdued the land; and the people delivered hostages to them, and submitted;
and went afterwards and slew their King Griffin, and brought to Harold his head: and he appointed another
king thereto.))
A.D. 1065. This year, before Lammas, ordered Earl Harold his men to build at Portskeweth in Wales. But
when he had begun, and collected many materials, and thought to have King Edward there for the purpose of
hunting, even when it was all ready, came Caradoc, son of Griffin, with all the gang that he could get, and
slew almost all that were building there; and they seized the materials that were there got ready. Wist we not
who first advised the wicked deed. This was done on the massday of St. Bartholomew. Soon after this all
the thanes in Yorkshire and in Northumberland gathered themselves together at York, and outlawed their Earl
Tosty; slaying all the men of his clan that they could reach, both Danish and English; and took all his
weapons in York, with gold and silver, and all his money that they could anywhere there find. They then sent
after Morkar, son of Earl Elgar, and chose him for their earl. He went south with all the shire, and with
Nottinghamshire and Derbyshire and Lincolnshire, till he came to Northampton; where his brother Edwin
came to meet him with the men that were in his earldom. Many Britons also came with him. Harold also there
met them; on whom they imposed an errand to King Edward, sending also messengers with him, and
requesting that they might have Morcar for their earl. This the king granted; and sent back Harold to them, to
Northampton, on the eve of St. Simon and St. Jude; and announced to them the same, and confirmed it by
hand, and renewed there the laws of Knute. But the Northern men did much harm about Northampton, whilst
he went on their errand: either that they slew men, and burned houses and corn; or took all the cattle that they
could come at; which amounted to many thousands. Many hundred men also they took, and led northward
with them; so that not only that shire, but others near it were the worse for many winters. Then Earl Tosty and
his wife, and all they who acted with him, went south over sea with him to Earl Baldwin; who received them
all: and they were there all the winter. About midwinter King Edward came to Westminster, and had the
minster there consecrated, which he had himself built to the honour of God, and St. Peter, and all God's
saints. This churchhallowing was on Childermasday. He died on the eve of twelfthday; and he was buried
on twelfthday in the same minster; as it is hereafter said. Here Edward king, (86) of Angles lord, sent his
stedfast soul to Christ. In the kingdom of God a holy spirit! He in the world here abode awhile, in the kingly
throng of council sage. Four and twenty winters wielding the sceptre freely, wealth he dispensed. In the tide
of health, the youthful monarch, offspring of Ethelred! ruled well his subjects; the Welsh and the Scots, and
the Britons also, Angles and Saxons relations of old. So apprehend the first in rank, that to Edward all the
noble king were firmly held highseated men. Blitheminded aye was the harmless king; though he long ere,
of land bereft, abode in exile wide on the earth; when Knute o'ercame the kin of Ethelred, and the Danes
wielded the dear kingdom of Engleland. Eight and twenty winters' rounds they wealth dispensed. Then
came forth free in his chambers, in royal array, good, pure, and mild, Edward the noble; by his country
defended by land and people. Until suddenly came the bitter Death and this king so dear snatched from
the earth. Angels carried his soul sincere into the light of heaven. But the prudent king had settled the realm
on highborn men on Harold himself, the noble earl; who in every season faithfully heard and obeyed his
lord, in word and deed; nor gave to any what might be wanted by the nation's king. This year also was Earl
Harold hallowed to king; but he enjoyed little tranquillity therein the while that he wielded the kingdom.
((A.D. 1065. And the manslaying was on St. Bartholomew's massday. And then, after Michael'smass, all
the thanes in Yorkshire went to York, and there slew all Earl Tosty's household servants whom they might
hear of, and took his treasures: and Tosty was then at Britford with the king. And then, very soon thereafter,
was a great council at Northampton; and then at Oxford on the day of Simon and Jude. And there was Harold
the earl, and would work their reconciliation if he might, but he could not: but all his earldom him
unanimously forsook and outlawed, and all who with him lawlessness upheld, because he robbed God first,
and all those bereaved over whom he had power of life and of land. And they then took to themselves Morkar
for earl; and Tosty went then over sea, and his wife with him, to Baldwin's land, and they took up their winter
residence at St. Omer's.))
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 82
Page No 85
A.D. 1066. This year came King Harold from York to Westminster, on the Easter succeeding the midwinter
when the king (Edward) died. Easter was then on the sixteenth day before the calends of May. Then was over
all England such a token seen as no man ever saw before. Some men said that it was the cometstar, which
others denominate the longhair'd star. It appeared first on the eve called "Litania major", that is, on the
eighth before the calends off May; and so shone all the week. Soon after this came in Earl Tosty from beyond
sea into the Isle of Wight, with as large a fleet as he could get; and he was there supplied with money and
provisions. Thence he proceeded, and committed outrages everywhere by the seacoast where he could land,
until he came to Sandwich. When it was told King Harold, who was in London, that his brother Tosty was
come to Sandwich, he gathered so large a force, naval and military, as no king before collected in this land;
for it was credibly reported that Earl William from Normandy, King Edward's cousin, would come hither and
gain this land; just as it afterwards happened. When Tosty understood that King Harold was on the way to
Sandwich, he departed thence, and took some of the boatmen with him, willing and unwilling, and went north
into the Humber with sixty skips; whence he plundered in Lindsey, and there slew many good men. When the
Earls Edwin and Morkar understood that, they came hither, and drove him from the land. And the boatmen
forsook him. Then he went to Scotland with twelve smacks; and the king of the Scots entertained him, and
aided him with provisions; and he abode there all the summer. There met him Harold, King of Norway, with
three hundred ships. And Tosty submitted to him, and became his man. (87) Then came King Harold (88) to
Sandwich, where he awaited his fleet; for it was long ere it could be collected: but when it was assembled, he
went into the Isle of Wight, and there lay all the summer and the autumn. There was also a landforce every
where by the sea, though it availed nought in the end. It was now the nativity of St. Mary, when the
provisioning of the men began; and no man could keep them there any longer. They therefore had leave to go
home: and the king rode up, and the ships were driven to London; but many perished ere they came thither.
When the ships were come home, then came Harald, King of Norway, north into the Tine, unawares, with a
very great seaforce no small one; that might be, with three hundred ships or more; and Earl Tosty came
to him with all those that he had got; just as they had before said: and they both then went up with all the fleet
along the Ouse toward York. (89) When it was told King Harold in the south, after he had come from the
ships, that Harald, King of Norway, and Earl Tosty were come up near York, then went he northward by day
and night, as soon as he could collect his army. But, ere King Harold could come thither, the Earls Edwin and
Morkar had gathered from their earldoms as great a force as they could get, and fought with the enemy. (90)
They made a great slaughter too; but there was a good number of the English people slain, and drowned, and
put to flight: and the Northmen had possession of the field of battle. It was then told Harold, king of the
English, that this had thus happened. And this fight was on the eve of St. Matthew the apostle, which was
Wednesday. Then after the fight went Harold, King of Norway, and Earl Tosty into York with as many
followers as they thought fit; and having procured hostages and provisions from the city, they proceeded to
their ships, and proclaimed full friendship, on condition that all would go southward with them, and gain this
land. In the midst of this came Harold, king of the English, with all his army, on the Sunday, to Tadcaster;
where he collected his fleet. Thence he proceeded on Monday throughout York. But Harald, King of Norway,
and Earl Tosty, with their forces, were gone from their ships beyond York to Stanfordbridge; for that it was
given them to understand, that hostages would be brought to them there from all the shire. Thither came
Harold, king of the English, unawares against them beyond the bridge; and they closed together there, and
continued long in the day fighting very severely. There was slain Harald the Fairhair'd, King of Norway,
and Earl Tosty, and a multitude of people with them, both of Normans and English; (91) and the Normans
that were left fled from the English, who slew them hotly behind; until some came to their ships, some were
drowned, some burned to death, and thus variously destroyed; so that there was little left: and the English
gained possession of the field. But there was one of the Norwegians who withstood the English folk, so that
they could not pass over the bridge, nor complete the victory. An Englishman aimed at him with a javelin, but
it availed nothing. Then came another under the bridge, who pierced him terribly inwards under the coat of
mail. And Harold, king of the English, then came over the bridge, followed by his army; and there they made
a great slaughter, both of the Norwegians and of the Flemings. But Harold let the king's son, Edmund, go
home to Norway with all the ships. He also gave quarter to Olave, the Norwegian king's son, and to their
bishop, and to the earl of the Orkneys, and to all those that were left in the ships; who then went up to our
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 83
Page No 86
king, and took oaths that they would ever maintain faith and friendship unto this land. Whereupon the King
let them go home with twenty four ships. These two general battles were fought within five nights.
Meantime Earl William came up from Normandy into Pevensey on the eve of St. Michael's mass; and soon
after his landing was effected, they constructed a castle at the port of Hastings. This was then told to King
Harold; and he gathered a large force, and came to meet him at the estuary of Appledore. William, however,
came against him unawares, ere his army was collected; but the king, nevertheless, very hardly encountered
him with the men that would support him: and there was a great slaughter made on either side. There was
slain King Harold, and Leofwin his brother, and Earl Girth his brother, with many good men: and the
Frenchmen gained the field of battle, as God granted them for the sins of the nation. Archbishop Aldred and
the corporation of London were then desirous of having child Edgar to king, as he was quite natural to them;
and Edwin and Morkar promised them that they would fight with them. But the more prompt the business
should ever be, so was it from day to day the later and worse; as in the end it all fared. This battle was fought
on the day of Pope Calixtus: and Earl William returned to Hastings, and waited there to know whether the
people would submit to him. But when he found that they would not come to him, he went up with all his
force that was left and that came since to him from over sea, and ravaged all the country that he overran, until
he came to Berkhampstead; where Archbishop Aldred came to meet him, with child Edgar, and Earls Edwin
and Morkar, and all the best men from London; who submitted then for need, when the most harm was done.
It was very illadvised that they did not so before, seeing that God would not better things for our sins. And
they gave him hostages and took oaths: and he promised them that he would be a faithful lord to them;
though in the midst of this they plundered wherever they went. Then on midwinter's day Archbishop Aldred
hallowed him to king at Westminster, and gave him possession with the books of Christ, and also swore him,
ere that he would set the crown on his head, that he would so well govern this nation as any before him best
did, if they would be faithful to him. Neverrhetess he laid very heavy tribute on men, and in Lent went over
sea to Normandy, taking with him Archbishop Stigand, and Abbot Aylnoth of Glastonbury, and the child
Edgar, and the Earls Edwin, Morkar, and Waltheof, and many other good men of England. Bishop Odo and
Earl William lived here afterwards, and wrought castles widely through this country, and harassed the
miserable people; and ever since has evil increased very much. May the end be good, when God will! In that
same expedition (92) was Leofric, Abbot of Peterborough; who sickened there, and came home, and died
soon after, on the night of Allhallowmass. God honour his soul! In his day was all bliss and all good at
Peterborough. He was beloved by all; so that the king gave to St. Peter and him the abbey at Burton, and that
at Coventry, which the Earl Leofric, who was his uncle, had formerly made; with that of Croyland, and that
of Thorney. He did so much good to the minster of Peterborough, in gold, and in silver, and in shroud, and in
land, as no other ever did before him, nor any one after him. But now was Gildenborough become a
wretched borough. The monks then chose for abbot Provost Brand, because he was a very good man, and
very wise; and sent him to Edgar Etheling, for that the landfolk supposed that he should be king: and the
etheling received him gladly. When King William heard say that, he was very wroth, and said that the abbot
had renounced him: but good men went between them, and reconciled them; because the abbot was a good
man. He gave the king forty marks of gold for his reconciliation; and he lived but a little while after only
three years. Afterwards came all wretchedness and all evil to the minster. God have mercy on it!
((A.D. 1066. This year died King Edward, and Harold the earl succeeded to the kingdom, and held it forty
weeks and one day. And this year came William, and won England. And in this year ChristChurch
[Canterbury] was burned. And this year appeared a comet on the fourteenth before the kalends of May.))
((A.D. 1066. ...And then he [Tosty] went thence, and did harm everywhere by the seacoast where he could
land, as far as Sandwich. Then was it made known to King Harold, who was in London, that Tosty his
brother was come to Sandwich. Then gathered he so great a shipforce, and also a land force, as no king here
in the land had before gathered, because it had been soothly said unto him, that William the earl from
Normandy, King Edward's kinsman, would come hither and subdue this land: all as it afterwards happened.
When Tosty learned that King Harold was on his way to Sandwich, then went he from Sandwich, and took
some of the boatmen with him, some willingly and some unwillingly; and went then north into Humber, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 84
Page No 87
there ravaged in Lindsey, and there slew many good men. When Edwin the earl and Morcar the earl
understood that, then came they thither, and drove him out of the land. And he went then to Scotland: and the
king of Scots protected him, and assisted him with provisions; and he there abode all the summer. Then came
King Harold to Sandwich, and there awaited his fleet, because it was long before it could be gathered
together. And when his fleet was gathered together, then went he into the Isle of Wight, and there lay all the
summer and the harvest; and a landforce was kept everywhere by the sea, though in the end it was of no
benefit. When it was the Nativity of St. Mary, then were the men's provisions gone, and no man could any
longer keep them there. Then were the men allowed to go home, and the king rode up, and the ships were
dispatched to London; and many perished before they came thither. When the ships had reached home, then
came King Harald from Norway, north into Tyne, and unawares, with a very large shipforce, and no small
one; that might be, or more. And Tosty the earl came to him with all that he had gotten, all as they had before
agreed; and then they went both, with all the fleet, along the Ouse, up towards York. Then was it made
known to King Harold in the south, as he was come from on shipboard, that Harald King of Norway and
Tosty the earl were landed near York. Then went he northward, day and night, as quickly as he could gather
his forces. Then, before that King Harold could come thither, then gathered Edwin the earl and Morcar the
earl from their earldom as great a force as they could get together; and they fought against the army, and
made great slaughter: and there was much of the English people slain, and drowned, and driven away in
flight; and the Northmen had possession of the place of carnage. And this fight was on the vigil of St.
Matthew the apostle, and it was Wednesday. And then, after the fight, went Harald, King of Norway, and
Tosty the earl, into York, with as much people as seemed meet to them. And they delivered hostages to them
from the city, and also assisted them with provisions; and so they went thence to their ships, and they agreed
upon a full peace, so that they should all go with him south, and this land subdue. Then, during this, came
Harold, king of the Angles, with all his forces, on the Sunday, to Tadcaster, and there drew up his force, and
went then on Monday throughout York; and Harald, King of Norway, and Tosty the earl, and their forces,
were gone from their ships beyond York to Stanfordbridge, because it had been promised them for a
certainty, that there, from all the shire, hostages should be brought to meet them. Then came Harold, king of
the English, against them, unawares, beyond the bridge, and they there joined battle, and very strenuously, for
a long time of the day, continued fighting: and there was Harald, King of Norway, and Tosty the earl slain,
and numberless of the people with them, as well of the Northmen as of the English: and the Northmen fled
from the English. Then was there one of the Norwegians who withstood the English people, so that they
might not pass over the bridge, nor obtain the victory. Then an Englishman aimed at him with a javelin, but
availed nothing; and then came another under the bridge, and pierced him terribly inwards under the coat of
mail. Then came Harold, king of the English, over the bridge, and his forces onward with him, and there
made great slaughter, as well of Norwegians as of Flemings. And the King's son, Edmund, Harold let go
home to Norway, with all the ships.))
((A.D. 1066. In this year was consecrated the minster at Westminster, on Childermassday. And King
Edward died on the eve of Twelfthday; and he was buried on Twelfthday within the newly consecrated
church at Westminster. And Harold the earl succeeded to the kingdom of England, even as the king had
granted it to him, and men also had chosen him thereto; and he was crowned as king on Twelfthday. And
that same year that he became king, he went out with a fleet against William [Earl of Normandy]; and the
while, came Tosty the earl into Humber with sixty ships. Edwin the earl came with a landforce and drove
him out; and the boatmen forsook him. And he went to Scotland with twelve vessels; and Harald, the King of
Norway, met him with three hundred ships, and Tosty submitted to him; and they both went into Humber,
until they came to York. And Morcar the earl, and Edwin the earl, fought against them; and the king of the
Norwegians had the victory. And it was made known to King Harold how it there was done, and had
happened; and he came there with a great army of English men, and met him at Stanfordbridge, and slew him
and the earl Tosty, and boldly overcame all the army. And the while, William the earl landed at Hastings, on
St. Michael'sday: and Harold came from the north, and fought against him before all his army had come up:
and there he fell, and his two brothers, Girth and Leofwin; and William subdued this land. And he came to
Westminster, and Archbishop Aldred consecrated him king, and men paid him tribute, delivered him
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 85
Page No 88
hostages, and afterwards bought their land. And then was Leofric, Abbot of Peterborough, in that same
expedition; and there he sickened, and came home, and was dead soon thereafter, on Allhallowsmass
night; God be merciful to his soul! In his day was all bliss and all good in Peterborough; and he was dear to
all people, so that the king gave to St. Peter and to him the abbacy at Burton, and that of Coventry, which
Leofric the earl, who was his uncle, before had made, and that of Crowland, and that of Thorney. And he
conferred so much of good upon the minster of Peterborough, in gold, and in silver, and in vestments, and in
land, as never any other did before him, nor any after him. After, Goldenborough became a wretched
borough. Then chose the monks for abbot Brand the provost, by reason that he was a very good man, and
very wise, and sent him then to Edgar the etheling, by reason that the people of the land supposed that he
should become king: and the etheling granted it him then gladly. When King William heard say that, then
was he very wroth, and said that the abbot had despised him. Then went good men between them, and
reconciled them, by reason that the abbot was a good man. Then gave he the king forty marks of gold for a
reconciliation; and then thereafter, lived he a little while, but three years. After that came every tribulation
and every evil to the minster. God have mercy on it!))
A.D. 1067. This year came the king back again to England on St. Nicholas's day; and the same day was
burned the church of Christ at Canterbury. Bishop Wulfwy also died, and is buried at his see in Dorchester.
The child Edric and the Britons were unsettled this year, and fought with the castlemen at Hereford, and did
them much harm. The king this year imposed a heavy guild on the wretched people; but, notwithstanding, let
his men always plunder all the country that they went over; and then he marched to Devonshire, and beset the
city of Exeter eighteen days. There were many of his army slain; out he had promised them well, and
performed ill; and the citizens surrendered the city because the thanes had betrayed them. This summer the
child Edgar departed, with his mother Agatha, and his two sisters, Margaret and Christina, and
MerleSweyne, and many good men with them; and came to Scotland under the protection of King Malcolm,
who entertained them all. Then began King Malcolm to yearn after the child's sister, Margaret, to wife; but he
and all his men long refused; and she also herself was averse, and said that she would neither have him nor
any one else, if the Supreme Power would grant, that she in her maidenhood might please the mighty Lord
with a carnal heart, in this short life, in pure continence. The king, however, earnestly urged her brother, until
he answered Yea. And indeed he durst not otherwise; for they were come into his kingdom. So that then it
was fulfilled, as God had long ere foreshowed; and else it could not be; as he himself saith in his gospel: that
"not even a sparrow on the ground may fall, without his foreshowing." The prescient Creator wist long before
what he of her would have done; for that she should increase the glory of God in this land, lead the king
aright from the path of error, bend him and his people together to a better way, and suppress the bad customs
which the nation formerly followed: all which she afterwards did. The king therefore received her, though it
was against her will, and was pleased with her manners, and thanked God, who in his might had given him
such a match. He wisely bethought himself, as he was a prudent man, and turned himself to God, and
renounced all impurity; accordingly, as the apostle Paul, the teacher of all the gentries, saith: "Salvabitur vir
infidelis per mulierem fidelem; sic et mulier infidelis per virum fidelem," etc.: that is in our language, "Full
oft the unbelieving husband is sanctified and healed through the believing wife, and so belike the wife
through the believing husband." This queen aforesaid performed afterwards many useful deeds in this land to
the glory of God, and also in her royal estate she well conducted herself, as her nature was. Of a faithful and
noble kin was she sprung. Her father was Edward Etheling, son of King Edmund. Edmund was the son of
Ethelred; Ethelred the son of Edgar; Edgar the son of Edred; and so forth in that royal line: and her maternal
kindred goeth to the Emperor Henry, who had the sovereignty over Rome. This year went out Githa, Harold's
mother, and the wives of many good men with her, to the FlatHolm, and there abode some time; and so
departed thence over sea to St. Omer's. This Easter came the king to Winchester; and Easter was then on the
tenth before the calends of April. Soon after this came the Lady Matilda hither to this land; and Archbishop
Eldred hallowed her to queen at Westminster on Whit Sunday. Then it was told the king, that the people in
the North had gathered themselves together, and would stand against him if he came. Whereupon he went to
Nottingham, and wrought there a castle; and so advanced to York, and there wrought two castles; and the
same at Lincoln, and everywhere in that quarter. Then Earl Gospatric and the best men went into Scotland.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part V 86
Page No 89
Amidst this came one of Harold's sons from Ireland with a naval force into the mouth of the Avon unawares,
and plundered soon over all that quarter; whence they went to Bristol, and would have stormed the town; but
the people bravely withstood them. When they could gain nothing from the town, they went to their ships
with the booty which they had acquired by plunder; and then they advanced upon Somersetshire, and there
went up; and Ednoth, master of the horse, fought with them; but he was there slain, and many good men on
either side; and those that were left departed thence.
A.D. 1068. This year King William gave Earl Robert the earldom over Northumberland; but the landsmen
attacked him in the town of Durham, and slew him, and nine hundred men with him. Soon afterwards Edgar
Etheling came with all the Northumbrians to York; and the townsmen made a treaty with him: but King
William came from the South unawares on them with a large army, and put them to flight, and slew on the
spot those who could not escape; which were many hundred men; and plundered the town. St. Peter's minster
he made a profanation, and all other places also he despoiled and trampled upon; and the etheling went back
again to Scotland. After this came Harold's sons from Ireland, about midsummer, with sixtyfour ships into
the mouth of the Taft, where they unwarily landed: and Earl Breon came unawares against them with a large
army, and fought with them, and slew there all the best men that were in the fleet; and the others, being small
forces, escaped to the ships: and Harold's sons went back to Ireland again.
A.D. 1069. This year died Aldred, Archbishop of York; and he is there buried, at his see. He died on the day
of Protus and Hyacinthus, having held the see with much dignity ten years wanting only fifteen weeks. Soon
after this came from Denmark three of the sons of King Sweyne with two hundred and forty ships, together
with Earl Esborn and Earl Thurkill, into the Humber; where they were met by the child Edgar, and Earl
Waltheof, and MerleSweyne, and Earl Gospatric with the Northumbrians, and all the landsmen; riding and
marching full merrily with an immense army: and so all unanimously advanced to York; where they stormed
and demolished the castle, and won innumerable treasures therein; slew there many hundreds of Frenchmen,
and led many with them to the ships; but, ere that the shipmen came thither, the Frenchmen had burned the
city, and also the holy minster of St. Peter had they entirely plundered, and destroyed with fire. When the
king heard this, then went he northward with all the force that he could collect, despoiling and laying waste
the shire withal; whilst the fleet lay all the winter in the Humber, where the king could not come at them. The
king was in York on Christmas Day, and so all the winter on land, and came to Winchester at Easter. Bishop
Egelric, who was at Peterborough, was this year betrayed, and led to Westminster; and his brother Egelwine
was outlawed. This year also died Brand, Abbot of Peterborough, on the fifth before the calends of
December.
Part VI
A.D. 1070. This year Landfranc, who was Abbot of Caen, came to England; and after a few days he became
Archbishop of Canterbury. He was invested on the fourth before the calends of September in his own see by
eight bishops, his suffragans. The others, who were not there, by messengers and by letter declared why they
could not be there. The same year Thomas, who was chosen Bishop of York, came to Canterbury, to be
invested there after the ancient custom. But when Landfranc craved confirmation of his obedience with an
oath, he refused; and said, that he ought not to do it. Whereupon Archbishop Landfranc was wroth, and bade
the bishops, who were come thither by Archbishop Landfranc's command to do the service, and all the monks
to unrobe themselves. And they by his order so did. Thomas, therefore, for the time, departed without
consecration. Soon after this, it happened that the Archbishop Landfranc went to Rome, and Thomas with
him. When they came thither, and had spoken about other things concerning which they wished to speak,
then began Thomas his speech: how he came to Canterbury, and how the archbishop required obedience of
him with an oath; but he declined it. Then began the Archbishop Landfranc to show with clear distinction,
that what he craved he craved by right; and with strong arguments he confirmed the same before the Pope
Alexander, and before all the council that was collected there; and so they went home. After this came
Thomas to Canterbury; and all that the archbishop required of him he humbly fulfilled, and afterwards
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 87
Page No 90
received consecration. This year Earl Waltheof agreed with the king; but in the Lent of the same year the king
ordered all the monasteries in England to be plundered. In the same year came King Sweyne from Denmark
into the Humber; and the landsmen came to meet him, and made a treaty with him; thinking that he would
overrun the land. Then came into Ely Christien, the Danish bishop, and Earl Osbern, and the Danish
domestics with them; and the English people from all the fenlands came to them; supposing that they should
win all that land. Then the monks of Peterborough heard say, that their own men would plunder the minster;
namely Hereward and his gang: because they understood that the king had given the abbacy to a French
abbot, whose name was Thorold; that he was a very stern man, and was then come into Stamford with all
his Frenchmen. Now there was a churchwarden, whose name was Yware; who took away by night all that he
could, testaments, masshackles, cantelcopes, and reefs, and such other small things, whatsoever he could;
and went early, before day, to the Abbot Thorold; telling him that he sought his protection, and informing
him how the outlaws were coming to Peterborough, and that he did all by advice of the monks. Early in the
morning came all the outlaws with many ships, resolving to enter the minster; but the monks withstood, so
that they could not come in. Then they laid on fire, and burned all the houses of the monks, and all the town
except one house. Then came they in through fire at the Bullhithe gate; where the monks met them, and
besought peace of them. But they regarded nothing. They went into the minster, climbed up to the holy rood,
took away the diadem from our Lord's head, all of pure gold, and seized the bracket that was underneath his
feet, which was all of red gold. They climbed up to the steeple, brought down the table that was hid there,
which was all of gold and silver, seized two golden shrines, and nine of silver, and took away fifteen large
crucifixes, of gold and of silver; in short, they seized there so much gold and silver, and so many treasures, in
money, in raiment, and in books, as no man could tell another; and said, that they did it from their attachment
to the minster. Afterwards they went to their ships, proceeded to Ely, and deposited there all the treasure. The
Danes, believing that they should overcome the Frenchmen, drove out all the monks; leaving there only one,
whose name was Leofwine Lang, who lay sick in the infirmary. Then came Abbot Thorold and eight times
twenty Frenchmen with him, all fullarmed. When he came thither, he found all within and without
consumed by fire, except the church alone; but the outlaws were all with the fleet, knowing that he would
come thither. This was done on the fourth day before the nones of June. The two kings, William and Sweyne,
were now reconciled; and the Danes went out of Ely with all the aforesaid treasure, and carried it away with
them. But when they came into the middle of the sea, there came a violent storm, and dispersed all the ships
wherein the treasures were. Some went to Norway, some to Ireland, some to Denmark. All that reached the
latter, consisted of the table, and some shrines, and some crucifixes, and many of the other treasures; which
they brought to a king's town, called , and deposited it all there in the church. Afterwards through their
own carelessness, and through their drunkenness, in one night the church and all that was therein was
consumed by fire. Thus was the minster of Peterborough burned and plundered. Almighty God have mercy
on it through his great goodness. Thus came the Abbot Thorold to Peterborough; and the monks too returned,
and performed the service of Christ in the church, which had before stood a full week without any kind of
rite. When Bishop Aylric heard it, he excommunicated all the men who that evil deed had done. There was a
great famine this year: and in the summer came the fleet in the north from the Humber into the Thames, and
lay there two nights, and made afterwards for Denmark. Earl Baldwin also died, and his son Arnulf
succeeded to the earldom. Earl William, in conjunction with the king of the Franks, was to be his guardian;
but Earl Robert came and slew his kinsman Arnulf and the earl, put the king to flight, and slew many
thousands of his men.
A.D. 1071. This year Earl Edwin and Earl Morkar fled out, (93) and roamed at random in woods and in
fields. Then went Earl Morkar to Ely by ship; but Earl Edwin was treacherously slain by his own men. Then
came Bishop Aylwine, and Siward Barn, and many hundred men with them, into Ely. When King William
heard that, then ordered he out a naval force and land force, and beset the land all about, and wrought a
bridge, and went in; and the naval force at the same time on the seaside. And the outlaws then all
surrendered; that was, Bishop Aylwine, and Earl Morkar, and all that were with them; except Hereward (94)
alone, and all those that would join him, whom he led out triumphantly. And the king took their ships, and
weapons, and many treasures; (95) and all the men he disposed of as he thought proper. Bishop Aylwine he
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 88
Page No 91
sent to Abingdon, where he died in the beginning of the winter.
A.D. 1072. This year King William led a naval force and a land force to Scotland, and beset that land on the
seaside with ships, whilst he led his landforce in at the Tweed; (96) but he found nothing there of any
value. King Malcolm, however, came, and made peace with King William, and gave hostages, and became
his man; whereupon the king returned home with all his force. This year died Bishop Aylric. He had been
invested Bishop of York; but that see was unjustly taken from him, and he then had the bishopric of Durham
given him; which he held as long as he chose, but resigned it afterwards, and retired to Peterborough minster;
where he abode twelve years. After that King William won England, then took he him from Peterborough,
and sent him to Westminster; where he died on the ides of October, and he is there buried, within the minster,
in the porch of St. Nicholas.
A.D. 1073. This year led King William an army, English and French, over sea, and won the district of Maine;
which the English very much injured by destroying the vineyards, burning the towns, and spoiling the land.
But they subdued it all into the hand of King William, and afterwards returned home to England.
A.D. 1074. This year King William went over sea to Normandy; and child Edgar came from Flanders into
Scotland on St. Grimbald's massday; where King Malcolm and his sister Margaret received him with much
pomp. At the same time sent Philip, the King of France, a letter to him, bidding him to come to him, and he
would give him the castle of Montreuil; that he might afterwards daily annoy his enemies. What then? King
Malcolm and his sister Margaret gave him and his men great presents, and many treasures; in skins
ornamented with purple, in pelisses made of martin skins, of greyskins, and of ermineskins, in palls, and
in vessels of gold and silver; and conducted him and his crew with great pomp from his territory. But in their
voyage evil befel them; for when they were out at sea, there came upon them such rough weather, and the
stormy sea and the strong wind drove them so violently on the shore, that all their ships burst, and they also
themselves came with difficulty to the land. Their treasure was nearly all lost, and some of his men also were
taken by the French; but he himself and his best men returned again to Scotland, some roughly travelling on
foot, and some miserably mounted. Then King Malcolm advised him to send to King William over sea, to
request his friendship, which he did; and the king gave it him, and sent after him. Again, therefore, King
Malcolm and his sister gave him and all his men numberless treasures, and again conducted him very
magnificently from their territory. The sheriff of York came to meet him at Durham, and went all the way
with him; ordering meat and fodder to be found for him at every castle to which they came, until they came
over sea to the king. Then King William received him with much pomp; and he was there afterwards in his
court, enjoying such rights as he confirmed to him by law.
A.D. 1075. This year King William gave Earl Ralph the daughter of William FitzOsborne to wife. This
same Ralph was British on his mother's side; but his father, whose name was also Ralph, was English; and
born in Norfolk. The king therefore gave his son the earldom of Norfolk and Suffolk; and he then led the
bride to Norwich. There was that brideale The source of man's bale. There was Earl Roger, and Earl
Waltheof, and bishops, and abbots; who there resolved, that they would drive the king out of the realm of
England. But it was soon told the king in Normandy how it was determined. It was Earl Roger and Earl Ralph
who were the authors of that plot; and who enticed the Britons to them, and sent eastward to Denmark after a
fleet to assist them. Roger went westward to his earldom, and collected his people there, to the king's
annoyance, as he thought; but it was to the great disadvantage of himself. He was however prevented. Ralph
also in his earldom would go forth with his people; but the castlemen that were in England and also the
people of the land, came against him, and prevented him from doing anything. He escaped however to the
ships at Norwich. (97) And his wife was in the castle; which she held until peace was made with her; when
she went out of England, with all her men who wished to join her. The king afterwards came to England, and
seized Earl Roger, his relative, and put him in prison. And Earl Waltheof went over sea, and bewrayed
himself; but he asked forgiveness, and proffered gifts of ransom. The king, however, let him off lightly, until
he (98) came to England; when he had him seized. Soon after that came east from Denmark two hundred
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 89
Page No 92
ships; wherein were two captains, Cnute Swainson, and Earl Hacco; but they durst not maintain a fight with
King William. They went rather to York, and broke into St. Peter's minster, and took therein much treasure,
and so went away. They made for Flanders over sea; but they all perished who were privy to that design; that
was, the son of Earl Hacco, and many others with him. This year died the Lady Edgitha, who was the relict of
King Edward, seven nights before Christmas, at Winchester; and the king caused her to be brought to
Westminster with great pomp; and he laid her with King Edward, her lord. And the king was then at
Westminster, at midwinter; where all the Britons were condemned who were at the brideale at Norwich.
Some were punished with blindness; some were driven from the land; and some were towed to Scandinavia.
So were the traitors of King William subdued.
A.D. 1076. This year died Sweyne, King of Denmark; and Harold his son took to the kingdom. And the king
gave the abbacy of Westminster to Abbot Vitalis, who had been Abbot of Bernay. This year also was Earl
Waltheof beheaded at Winchester, on the mass day of St. Petronilla; (99) and his body was carried to
Croyland, where he lies buried. King William now went over sea, and led his army to Brittany, and beset the
castle of Dol; but the Bretons defended it, until the king came from France; whereupon William departed
thence, having lost there both men and horses, and many of his treasures.
A.D. 1077. This year were reconciled the king of the Franks and William, King of England. But it continued
only a little while. This year was London burned, one night before the Assumption of St. Mary, so terribly as
it never was before, since it was built. This year the moon was eclipsed three nights before Candlemas; and in
the same year died Aylwy, the prudent Abbot of Evesham, on the fourteenth day before the calends of March,
on the massday of St. Juliana; and Walter was appointed abbot in his stead; and Bishop Herman also died,
on the tenth day before the calends of March, who was Bishop in Berkshire, and in Wiltshire, and in
Dorsetshire. This year also King Malcolm won the mother of Malslaythe.... and all his best men, and all his
treasures, and his cattle; and he himself not easily escaped.... This year also was the dry summer; and wild
fire came upon many shires, and burned many towns; and also many cities were ruined thereby.
A.D. 1079. This year Robert, the son of King William, deserted from his father to his uncle Robert in
Flanders; because his father would not let him govern his earldom in Normandy; which he himself, and also
King Philip with his permission, had given him. The best men that were in the land also had sworn oaths of
allegiance to him, and taken him for their lord. This year, therefore, Robert fought with his father, without
Normandy, by a castle called Gerberoy; and wounded him in the hand; and his horse, that he sat upon, was
killed under him; and he that brought him another was killed there right with a dart. That was Tookie
Wiggodson. Many were there slain, and also taken. His son William too was there wounded; but Robert
returned to Flanders. We will not here, however, record any more injury that he did his father. This year came
King Malcolm from Scotland into England, betwixt the two festivals of St. Mary, with a large army, which
plundered Northumberland till it came to the Tine, and slew many hundreds of men, and carried home much
coin, and treasure, and men in captivity.
A.D. 1080. This year was Bishop Walker slain in Durham, at a council; and an hundred men with him,
French and Flemish. He himself was born in Lorrain. This did the Northumbrians in the month of May. (100)
A.D. 1081. This year the king led an army into Wales, and there freed many hundreds of men.
A.D. 1082. This year the king seized Bishop Odo; and this year also was a great famine.
A.D. 1083. This year arose the tumult at Glastonbury betwixt the Abbot Thurstan and his monks. It
proceeded first from the abbot's want of wisdom, that he misgoverned his monks in many things. But the
monks meant well to him; and told him that he should govern them rightly, and love them, and they would be
faithful and obedient to him. The abbot, however, would hear nothing of this; but evil entreated them, and
threatened them worse. One day the abbot went into the chapterhouse, and spoke against the monks, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 90
Page No 93
attempted to mislead them; (101) and sent after some laymen, and they came fullarmed into the chapter
house upon the monks. Then were the monks very much afraid (102) of them, and wist not what they were to
do, but they shot forward, and some ran into the church, and locked the doors after them. But they followed
them into the minster, and resolved to drag them out, so that they durst not go out. A rueful thing happened
on that day. The Frenchmen broke into the choir, and hurled their weapons toward the altar, where the monks
were; and some of the knights went upon the upper floor, (103) and shot their arrows downward incessantly
toward the sanctuary; so that on the crucifix that stood above the altar they stuck many arrows. And the
wretched monks lay about the altar, and some crept under, and earnestly called upon God, imploring his
mercy, since they could not obtain any at the hands of men. What can we say, but that they continued to shoot
their arrows; whilst the others broke down the doors, and came in, and slew (104) some of the monks to
death, and wounded many therein; so that the blood came from the altar upon the steps, and from the steps on
the floor. Three there were slain to death, and eighteen wounded. And in this same year departed Matilda,
queen of King William, on the day after AllHallowmass. And in the same year also, after midwinter, the
king ordained a large and heavy contribution (105) over all England; that was, upon each hide of land, two
and seventy pence.
A.D. 1084. In this year died Wulfwold, Abbot of Chertsey, on the thirteenth day before the calends of May.
A.D. 1085. In this year men reported, and of a truth asserted, that Cnute, King of Denmark, son of King
Sweyne, was coming hitherward, and was resolved to win this land, with the assistance of Robert, Earl of
Flanders; (106) for Cnute had Robert's daughter. When William, King of England, who was then resident in
Normandy (for he had both England and Normandy), understood this, he went into England with so large an
army of horse and foot, from France and Brittany, as never before sought this land; so that men wondered
how this land could feed all that force. But the king left the army to shift for themselves through all this land
amongst his subjects, who fed them, each according to his quota of land. Men suffered much distress this
year; and the king caused the land to be laid waste about the sea coast; that, if his foes came up, they might
not have anything on which they could very readily seize. But when the king understood of a truth that his
foes were impeded, and could not further their expedition, (107) then let he some of the army go to their own
land; but some he held in this land over the winter. Then, at the midwinter, was the king in Glocester with his
council, and held there his court five days. And afterwards the archbishop and clergy had a synod three days.
There was Mauritius chosen Bishop of London, William of Norfolk, and Robert of Cheshire. These were all
the king's clerks. After this had the king a large meeting, and very deep consultation with his council, about
this land; how it was occupied, and by what sort of men. Then sent he his men over all England into each
shire; commissioning them to find out "How many hundreds of hides were in the shire, what land the king
himself had, and what stock upon the land; or, what dues he ought to have by the year from the shire." Also
he commissioned them to record in writing, "How much land his archbishops had, and his diocesan bishops,
and his abbots, and his earls;" and though I may be prolix and tedious, "What, or how much, each man had,
who was an occupier of land in England, either in land or in stock, and how much money it were worth." So
very narrowly, indeed, did he commission them to trace it out, that there was not one single hide, nor a yard
(108) of land, nay, moreover (it is shameful to tell, though he thought it no shame to do it), not even an ox,
nor a cow, nor a swine was there left, that was not set down in his writ. And all the recorded particulars were
afterwards brought to him. (109)
A.D. 1086. This year the king bare his crown, and held his court, in Winchester at Easter; and he so arranged,
that he was by the Pentecost at Westminster, and dubbed his son Henry a knight there. Afterwards he moved
about so that he came by Lammas to Sarum; where he was met by his councillors; and all the landsmen that
were of any account over all England became this man's vassals as they were; and they all bowed themselves
before him, and became his men, and swore him oaths of allegiance that they would against all other men be
faithful to him. Thence he proceeded into the Isle of Wight; because he wished to go into Normandy, and so
he afterwards did; though he first did according to his custom; he collected a very large sum from his people,
wherever he could make any demand, whether with justice or otherwise. Then he went into Normandy; and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 91
Page No 94
Edgar Etheling, the relation of King Edward, revolted from him, for he received not much honour from him;
but may the Almighty God give him honour hereafter. And Christina, the sister of the etheling, went into the
monastery of Rumsey, and received the holy veil. And the same year there was a very heavy season, and a
swinkful and sorrowful year in England, in murrain of cattle, and corn and fruits were at a stand, and so much
untowardness in the weather, as a man may not easily think; so tremendous was the thunder and lightning,
that it killed many men; and it continually grew worse and worse with men. May God Almighty better it
whenever it be his will.
A.D. 1087. After the birth of our Lord and Saviour Christ, one thousand and eightyseven winters; in the one
and twentieth year after William began to govern and direct England, as God granted him, was a very heavy
and pestilent season in this land. Such a sickness came on men, that full nigh every other man was in the
worst disorder, that is, in the diarrhoea; and that so dreadfully, that many men died in the disorder.
Afterwards came, through the badness of the weather as we before mentioned, so great a famine over all
England, that many hundreds of men died a miserable death through hunger. Alas! how wretched and how
rueful a time was there! When the poor wretches lay full nigh driven to death prematurely, and afterwards
came sharp hunger, and dispatched them withall! Who will not be penetrated with grief at such a season? or
who is so hardhearted as not to weep at such misfortune? Yet such things happen for folks' sins, that they will
not love God and righteousness. So it was in those days, that little righteousness was in this land with any
men but with the monks alone, wherever they fared well. The king and the head men loved much, and
overmuch, covetousness in gold and in silver; and recked not how sinfully it was got, provided it came to
them. The king let his land at as high a rate as he possibly could; then came some other person, and bade
more than the former one gave, and the king let it to the men that bade him more. Then came the third, and
bade yet more; and the king let it to hand to the men that bade him most of all: and he recked not how very
sinfully the stewards got it of wretched men, nor how many unlawful deeds they did; but the more men spake
about right law, the more unlawfully they acted. They erected unjust tolls, and many other unjust things they
did, that are difficult to reckon. Also in the same year, before harvest, the holy minster of St. Paul, the
episcopal see in London, was completely burned, with many other minsters, and the greatest part, and the
richest of the whole city. So also, about the same time, full nigh each headport in all England was entirely
burned. Alas! rueful and woeful was the fate of the year that brought forth so many misfortunes. In the same
year also, before the Assumption of St. Mary, King William went from Normandy into France with an army,
and made war upon his own lord Philip, the king, and slew many of his men, and burned the town of Mante,
and all the holy minsters that were in the town; and two holy men that served God, leading the life of
anachorets, were burned therein. This being thus done, King William returned to Normandy. Rueful was the
thing he did; but a more rueful him befel. How more rueful? He fell sick, and it dreadfully ailed him. What
shall I say? Sharp death, that passes by neither rich men nor poor, seized him also. He died in Normandy, on
the next day after the Nativity of St. Mary, and he was buried at Caen in St. Stephen's minster, which he had
formerly reared, and afterwards endowed with manifold gifts. Alas! how false and how uncertain is this
world's weal! He that was before a rich king, and lord of many lands, had not then of all his land more than a
space of seven feet! and he that was whilom enshrouded in gold and gems, lay there covered with mould! He
left behind him three sons; the eldest, called Robert, who was earl in Normandy after him; the second, called
William, who wore the crown after him in England; and the third, called Henry, to whom his father
bequeathed immense treasure. If any person wishes to know what kind of man he was, or what honour he
had, or of how many lands he was lord, then will we write about him as well as we understand him: we who
often looked upon him, and lived sometime in his court. This King William then that we speak about was a
very wise man, and very rich; more splendid and powerful than any of his predecessors were. He was mild to
the good men that loved God, and beyond all measure severe to the men that gainsayed his will. On that same
spot where God granted him that he should gain England, he reared a mighty minster, and set monks therein,
and well endowed it. In his days was the great monastery in Canterbury built, and also very many others over
all England. This land was moreover well filled with monks, who modelled their lives after the rule of St.
Benedict. But such was the state of Christianity in his time, that each man followed what belonged to his
profession he that would. He was also very dignified. Thrice he bare his crown each year, as oft as he was
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 92
Page No 95
in England. At Easter he bare it in Winchester, at Pentecost in Westminster, at midwinter in Glocester. And
then were with him all the rich men over all England; archbishops and diocesan bishops, abbots and earls,
thanes and knights. So very stern was he also and hot, that no man durst do anything against his will. He had
earls in his custody, who acted against his will. Bishops he hurled from their bishoprics, and abbots from
their abbacies, and thanes into prison. At length he spared not his own brother Odo, who was a very rich
bishop in Normandy. At Baieux was his episcopal stall; and he was the foremost man of all to aggrandise the
king. He had an earldom in England; and when the king was in Normandy, then was he the mightiest man in
this land. Him he confined in prison. But amongst other things is not to be forgotten that good peace that he
made in this land; so that a man of any account might go over his kingdom unhurt with his bosom full of
gold. No man durst slay another, had he never so much evil done to the other; and if any churl lay with a
woman against her will, he soon lost the limb that he played with. He truly reigned over England; and by his
capacity so thoroughly surveyed it, that there was not a hide of land in England that he wist not who had it, or
what it was worth, and afterwards set it down in his book. (110) The land of the Britons was in his power;
and he wrought castles therein; and ruled Anglesey withal. So also he subdued Scotland by his great strength.
As to Normandy, that was his native land; but he reigned also over the earldom called Maine; and if he might
have yet lived two years more, he would have won Ireland by his valour, and without any weapons.
Assuredly in his time had men much distress, and very many sorrows. Castles he let men build, and
miserably swink the poor. The king himself was so very rigid; and extorted from his subjects many marks of
gold, and many hundred pounds of silver; which he took of his people, for little need, by right and by unright.
He was fallen into covetousness, and greediness he loved withal. He made many deerparks; and he
established laws therewith; so that whosoever slew a hart, or a hind, should be deprived of his eyesight. As he
forbade men to kill the harts, so also the boars; and he loved the tall deer as if he were their father. Likewise
he decreed by the hares, that they should go free. His rich men bemoaned it, and the poor men shuddered at it.
But he was so stern, that he recked not the hatred of them all; for they must follow withal the king's will, if
they would live, or have land, or possessions, or even his peace. Alas! that any man should presume so to
puff himself up, and boast o'er all men. May the Almighty God show mercy to his soul, and grant him
forgiveness of his sins! These things have we written concerning him, both good and evil; that men may
choose the good after their goodness, and flee from the evil withal, and go in the way that leadeth us to the
kingdom of heaven. Many things may we write that were done in this same year. So it was in Denmark, that
the Danes, a nation that was formerly accounted the truest of all, were turned aside to the greatest untruth,
and to the greatest treachery that ever could be. They chose and bowed to King Cnute, and swore him oaths,
and afterwards dastardly slew him in a church. It happened also in Spain, that the heathens went and made
inroads upon the Christians, and reduced much of the country to their dominion. But the king of the
Christians, Alphonzo by name, sent everywhere into each land, and desired assistance. And they came to his
support from every land that was Christian; and they went and slew or drove away all the heathen folk, and
won their land again, through God's assistance. In this land also, in the same year, died many rich men;
Stigand, Bishop of Chichester, and the Abbot of St. Augustine, and the Abbot of Bath, and the Abbot of
Pershore, and the lord of them all, William, King of England, that we spoke of before. After his death his son,
called William also as the father, took to the kingdom, and was blessed to king by Archbishop Landfranc at
Westminster three days ere Michaelmas day. And all the men in England submitted to him, and swore oaths
to him. This being thus done, the king went to Winchester, and opened the treasure house, and the treasures
that his father had gathered, in gold, and in silver, and in vases, and in palls, and in gems, and in many other
valuable things that are difficult to enumerate. Then the king did as his father bade him ere he was dead; he
there distributed treasures for his father's soul to each monastery that was in England; to some ten marks of
gold, to some six, to each upland (111) church sixty pence. And into each shire were sent a hundred pounds
of money to distribute amongst poor men for his soul. And ere he departed, he bade that they should release
all the men that were in prison under his power. And the king was on the midwinter in London.
A.D. 1088. In this year was this land much stirred, and filled with great treachery; so that the richest
Frenchmen that were in this land would betray their lord the king, and would have his brother Robert king,
who was earl in Normandy. In this design was engaged first Bishop Odo, and Bishop Gosfrith, and William,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 93
Page No 96
Bishop of Durham. So well did the king by the bishop [Odo] that all England fared according to his counsel,
and as he would. And the bishop thought to do by him as Judas Iscariot did by our Lord. And Earl Roger was
also of this faction; and much people was with him all Frenchmen. This conspiracy was formed in Lent. As
soon as Easter came, then went they forth, and harrowed, and burned, and wasted the king's farms; and they
despoiled the lands of all the men that were in the king's service. And they each of them went to his castle,
and manned it, and provisioned it as well as they could. Bishop Gosfrith, and Robert the peace breaker,
went to Bristol, and plundered it, and brought the spoil to the castle. Afterwards they went out of the castle,
and plundered Bath, and all the land thereabout; and all the honor (112) of Berkeley they laid waste. And the
men that eldest were of Hereford, and all the shire forthwith, and the men of Shropshire, with much people of
Wales, came and plundered and burned in Worcestershire, until they came to the city itself, which it was their
design to set on fire, and then to rifle the minster, and win the king's castle to their hands. The worthy Bishop
Wulfstan, seeing these things, was much agitated in his mind, because to him was betaken the custody of the
castle. Nevertheless his hired men went out of the castle with few attendants, and, through God's mercy and
the bishop's merits, slew or took five hundred men, and put all the others to flight. The Bishop of Durham did
all the harm that he could over all by the north. Roger was the name of one of them; (113) who leaped into
the castle at Norwich, and did yet the worst of all over all that land. Hugh also was one, who did nothing
better either in Leicestershire or in Northamptonshire. The Bishop Odo being one, though of the same family
from which the king himself was descended, went into Kent to his earldom, and greatly despoiled it; and
having laid waste the lands of the king and of the archbishop withal, he brought the booty into his castle at
Rochester. When the king understood all these things, and what treachery they were employing against him,
then was he in his mind much agitated. He then sent after Englishmen, described to them his need, earnestly
requested their support, and promised them the best laws that ever before were in this land; each unright guild
he forbade, and restored to the men their woods and chaces. But it stood no while. The Englishmen however
went to the assistance of the king their lord. They advanced toward Rochester, with a view to get possession
of the Bishop Odo; for they thought, if they had him who was at first the head of the conspiracy, they might
the better get possession of all the others. They came then to the castle at Tunbridge; and there were in the
castle the knights of Bishop Odo, and many others who were resolved to hold it against the king. But the
Englishmen advanced, and broke into the castle, and the men that were therein agreed with the king. The king
with his army went toward Rochester. And they supposed that the bishop was therein; but it was made known
to the king that the bishop was gone to the castle at Pevensea. And the king with his army went after, and
beset the castle about with a very large force full six weeks. During this time the Earl of Normandy, Robert,
the king's brother, gathered a very considerable force, and thought to win England with the support of those
men that were in this land against the king. And he sent some of his men to this land, intending to come
himself after. But the Englishmen that guarded the sea lighted upon some of the men, and slew them, and
drowned more than any man could tell. When provisions afterwards failed those within the castle, they
earnestly besought peace, and gave themselves up to the king; and the bishop swore that he would depart out
of England, and no more come on this land, unless the king sent after him, and that he would give up the
castle at Rochester. Just as the bishop was going with an intention to give up the castle, and the king had sent
his men with him, then arose the men that were in the castle, and took the bishop and the king's men, and put
them into prison. In the castle were some very good knights; Eustace the Young, and the three sons of Earl
Roger, and all the best born men that were in this land or in Normandy. When the king understood this thing,
then went he after with the army that he had there, and sent over all England. and bade that each man that was
faithful should come to him, French and English, from seaport and from upland. Then came to him much
people; and he went to Rochester, and beset the castle, until they that were therein agreed, and gave up the
castle. The Bishop Odo with the men that were in the castle went over sea, and the bishop thus abandoned the
dignity that he had in this land. The king afterwards sent an army to Durham, and allowed it to beset the
castle, and the bishop agreed, and gave up the castle, and relinquished his bishopric, and went to Normandy.
Many Frenchmen also abandoned their lands, and went over sea; and the king gave their lands to the men that
were faithful to him.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 94
Page No 97
A.D. 1089. In this year the venerable father and favourer of monks, Archbishop Landfranc, departed this life;
but we hope that he is gone to the heavenly kingdom. There was also over all England much earthstirring on
the third day before the ides of August, and it was a very late year in corn, and in every kind of fruits, so that
many men reaped their corn about Martinmas, and yet later.
A.D. 1090. Indiction XIII. These things thus done, just as we have already said above, by the king, and by his
brother and by this men, the king was considering how he might wreak his vengeance on his brother Robert,
harass him most, and win Normandy of him. And indeed through his craft, or through bribery, he got
possession of the castle at St. Valeri, and the haven; and so he got possession of that at Albemarle. And
therein he set his knights; and they did harm to the land in harrowing and burning. After this he got
possession of more castles in the land; and therein lodged his horsemen. When the Earl of Normandy, Robert,
understood that his sworn men deceived him, and gave up their castles to do him harm, then sent he to his
lord, Philip, king of the Franks; and he came to Normandy with a large army, and the king and the earl with
an immense force beset the castle about, wherein were the men of the King of England. But the King William
of England sent to Philip, king of the Franks; and he for his love, or for his great treasure, abandoned thus his
subject the Earl Robert and his land; and returned again to France, and let them so remain. And in the midst
of these things this land was much oppressed by unlawful exactions and by many other misfortunes.
A.D. 1091. In this year the King William held his court at Christmas in Westminster, and thereafter at
Candlemas he went, for the annoyance of his brother, out of England into Normandy. Whilst he was there,
their reconciliation took place, on the condition, that the earl put into his hands Feschamp, and the earldom of
Ou, and Cherbourg; and in addition to this, that the king's men should be secure in the castles that they had
won against the will of the earl. And the king in return promised him those many [castles] that their father
had formerly won, and also to reduce those that had revolted from the earl, also all that his father had there
beyond, except those that he had then given the king, and that all those, that in England before for the earl
had lost their land, should have it again by this treaty, and that the earl should have in England just so much
as was specified in this agreement. And if the earl died without a son by lawful wedlock, the king should be
heir of all Normandy; and by virtue of this same treaty, if the king died, the earl should be heir of all England.
To this treaty swore twelve of the best men of the king's side, and twelve of the earl's, though it stood but a
little while afterwards. In the midst of this treaty was Edgar Etheling deprived of the land that the earl had
before permitted him to keep in hand; and he went out of Normandy to the king, his sister's husband, in
Scotland, and to his sister. Whilst the King William was out of England, the King Malcolm of Scotland came
hither into England, and overran a great deal of it, until the good men that governed this land sent an army
against him and repulsed him. When the King William in Normandy heard this, then prepared he his
departure, and came to England, and his brother, the Earl Robert, with him; and he soon issued an order to
collect a force both naval and military; but the naval force, ere it could come to Scotland, perished almost
miserably, a few days before St. Michael's mass. And the king and his brother proceeded with the landforce;
but when the King Malcolm heard that they were resolved to seek him with an army, he went with his force
out of Scotland into Lothaine in England, and there abode. When the King William came near with his army,
then interceded between them Earl Robert, and Edgar Etheling, and so made the peace of the kings, that the
King Malcolm came to our king, and did homage, (114) promising all such obedience as he formerly paid to
his father; and that he confirmed with an oath. And the King William promised him in land and in all things
whatever he formerly had under his father. In this settlement was also Edgar Etheling united with the king.
And the kings then with much satisfaction departed; yet that stood but a little while. And the Earl Robert
tarried here full nigh until Christmas with the king, and during this time found but little of the truth of their
agreement; and two days before that tide he took ship in the Isle of Wight, and went into Normandy, and
Edgar Etheling with him.
A.D. 1092. In this year the King William with a large army went north to Carlisle, and restored the town, and
reared the castle, and drove out Dolphin that before governed the land, and set his own men in the castle, and
then returned hither southward. And a vast number of rustic people with wives and with cattle he sent thither,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 95
Page No 98
to dwell there in order to till the land.
A.D. 1093. In this year, during Lent, was the King William at Glocester so sick, that he was by all reported
dead. And in his illness he made many good promises to lead his own life aright; to grant peace and
protection to the churches of God, and never more again with fee to sell; to have none but righteous laws
amongst his people. The archbishopric of Canterbury, that before remained in his own hand, he transferred to
Anselm, who was before Abbot of Bec; to Robert his chancellor the bishopric of Lincoln; and to many
minsters he gave land; but that he afterwards took away, when he was better, and annulled all the good laws
that he promised us before. Then after this sent the King of Scotland, and demanded the fulfilment of the
treaty that was promised him. And the King William cited him to Glocester, and sent him hostages to
Scotland; and Edgar Etheling, afterwards, and the men returned, that brought him with great dignity to the
king. But when he came to the king, he could not be considered worthy either of our king's speech, or of the
conditions that were formerly promised him. For this reason therefore they parted with great dissatisfaction,
and the King Malcolm returned to Scotland. And soon after he came home, he gathered his army, and came
harrowing into England with more hostility than behoved him; and Robert, the Earl of Northumberland,
surrounded him unawares with his men, and slew him. Morel of Barnborough slew him, who was the earl's
steward, and a baptismal friend (115) of King Malcolm. With him was also slain Edward his son; who after
him should have been king, if he had lived. When the good Queen Margaret heard this her most beloved
lord and son thus betrayed she was in her mind almost distracted to death. She with her priests went to
church, and performed her rites, and prayed before God, that she might give up the ghost. And the Scots then
chose (116) Dufenal to king, Malcolm's brother, and drove out all the English that formerly were with the
King Malcolm. When Duncan, King Malcolm's son, heard all that had thus taken place (he was then in the
King William's court, because his father had given him as a hostage to our king's father, and so he lived here
afterwards), he came to the king, and did such fealty as the king required at his hands; and so with his
permission went to Scotland, with all the support that he could get of English and French, and deprived his
uncle Dufenal of the kingdom, and was received as king. But the Scots afterwards gathered some force
together, and slew full nigh all his men; and he himself with a few made his escape. (117) Afterwards they
were reconciled, on the condition that he never again brought into the land English or French.
A.D. 1094. This year the King William held his court at Christmas in Glocester; and messengers came to him
thither from his brother Robert of Normandy; who said that his brother renounced all peace and conditions,
unless the king would fulfil all that they had stipulated in the treaty; and upon that he called him forsworn and
void of truth, unless he adhered to the treaty, or went thither and explained himself there, where the treaty
was formerly made and also sworn. Then went the king to Hastings at Candlemas; and whilst he there abode
waiting the weather, he let hallow the minster at Battel, and deprived Herbert Losang, the Bishop of Thetford,
of his staff; and thereafter about midLent went over sea into Normandy. After he came, thither, he and his
brother Robert, the earl, said that they should come together in peace (and so they did), and might be united.
Afterwards they came together with the same men that before made the treaty, and also confirmed it by oaths;
and all the blame of breaking the treaty they threw upon the king; but he would not confess this, nor even
adhere to the treaty; and for this reason they parted with much dissatisfaction. And the king afterwards won
the castle at Bures, and took the earl's men therein; some of whom he sent hither to this land. On the other
hand the earl, with the assistance of the King of France, won the castle at Argence, and took therein Roger of
Poitou, (118) and seven hundred of the king's knights with him; and afterwards that at Hulme; and oft readily
did either of them burn the towns of the other, and also took men. Then sent the king hither to this land, and
ordered twenty thousand Englishmen to be sent out to Normandy to his assistance; but when they came to
sea, they then had orders to return, and to pay to the king's behoof the fee that they had taken; which was half
a pound each man; and they did so. And the earl after this, with the King of France, and with all that he could
gather together, went through the midst of Normandy, towards Ou, where the King William was, and thought
to besiege him within; and so they advanced until they came to Luneville. There was the King of France
through cunning turned aside; and so afterwards all the army dispersed. In the midst of these things the King
William sent after his brother Henry, who was in the castle at Damfront; but because he could not go through
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 96
Page No 99
Normandy with security, he sent ships after him, and Hugh, Earl of Chester. When, however, they should
have gone towards Ou where the king was, they went to England, and came up at Hamton, (119) on the eve
of the feast of All Saints, and here afterwards abode; and at Christmas they were in London. In this same year
also the Welshmen gathered themselves together, and with the French that were in Wales, or in the
neighbourhood, and had formerly seized their land, stirred up war, and broke into many fastnesses and
castles, and slew many men. And when their followers had increased, they divided themselves into larger
parties. With some part of them fought Hugh, Earl of Shropshire, (120) and put them to flight. Nevertheless
the other part of them all this year omitted no evil that they could do. This year also the Scots ensnared their
king, Duncan, and slew him; and afterwards, the second time, took his uncle Dufenal to king, through whose
instruction and advice he was betrayed to death.
A.D. 1095. In this year was the King William the first four days of Christmas at Whitsand, and after the
fourth day came hither, and landed at Dover. And Henry, the king's brother, abode in this land until Lent, and
then went over sea to Normandy, with much treasure, on the king's behalf, against their brother, Earl Robert,
and frequently fought against the earl, and did him much harm, both in land and in men. And then at Easter
held the king his court in Winchester; and the Earl Robert of Northumberland would not come to court. And
the king was much stirred to anger with him for this, and sent to him, and bade him harshly, if he would be
worthy of protection, that he would come to court at Pentecost. In this year was Easter on the eighth day
before the calends of April; and upon Easter, on the night of the feast of St Ambrose, that is, the second
before the nones of April, (121) nearly over all this land, and almost all the night, numerous and manifold
stars were seen to fall from heaven; not by one or two, but so thick in succession, that no man could tell it.
Hereafter at Pentecost was the king at Windsor, and all his council with him, except the Earl of
Northumberland; for the king would neither give him hostages, nor own upon truth, that he might come and
go with security. And the king therefore ordered his army, and went against the earl to Northumberland; and
soon after he came thither, he won many and nearly all the best of the earl's clan in a fortress, and put them
into custody; and the castle at Tinemouth he beset until he won it, and the earl's brother therein, and all that
were with him; and afterwards went to Bamborough, and beset the earl therein. But when the king saw that he
could not win it, then ordered he his men to make a castle before Bamborough, and called it in his speech
"Malveisin"; that is in English, "Evil Neighbour". And he fortified it strongly with his men, and afterwards
went southward. Then, soon after that the king was gone south, went the earl one night out of Bamborough
towards Tinemouth; but they that were in the new castle were aware of him, and went after him, and fought
him, and wounded him, and afterwards took him. And of those that were with him some they slew, and some
they took alive. Among these things it was made known to the king, that the Welshmen in Wales had broken
into a castle called Montgomery, and slain the men of Earl Hugo, that should have held it. He therefore gave
orders to levy another force immediately, and after Michaelmas went into Wales, and shifted his forces, and
went through all that land, so that the army came all together by All Saints to Snowdon. But the Welsh
always went before into the mountains and the moors, that no man could come to them. The king then went
homeward; for he saw that he could do no more there this winter. When the king came home again, he gave
orders to take the Earl Robert of Northumberland, and lead him to Bamborough, and put out both his eyes,
unless they that were therein would give up the castle. His wife held it, and Morel who was steward, and also
his relative. Through this was the castle then given up; and Morel was then in the king's court; and through
him were many both of the clergy and laity surrendered, who with their counsels had conspired against the
king. The king had before this time commanded some to be brought into prison, and afterwards had it very
strictly proclaimed over all this country, "That all who held land of the king, as they wished to be considered
worthy of protection, should come to court at the time appointed." And the king commanded that the Earl
Robert should be led to Windsor, and there held in the castle. Also in this same year, against Easter, came the
pope's nuncio hither to this land. This was Bishop Walter, a man of very good life, of the town of Albano;
and upon the day of Pentecost on the behalf of Pope Urban he gave Archbishop Anselm his pall, and he
received him at his archiepiscopal stall in Canterbury. And Bishop Walter remained afterwards in this land a
great part of the year; and men then sent by him the Romescot, (122) which they had not done for many
years before. This same year also the weather was very unseasonable; in consequence of which throughout all
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 97
Page No 100
this land were all the fruits of the earth reduced to a moderate crop.
A.D. 1096. In this year held the King William his court at Christmas in Windsor; and William Bishop of
Durham died there on newyear's day; and on the octave of the Epiphany was the king and all his councillors
at Salisbury. There Geoffry Bainard challenged William of Ou, the king's relative, maintaining that he had
been in the conspiracy against the king. And he fought with him, and overcame him in single combat; and
after he was overcome, the king gave orders to put out his eyes, and afterwards to emasculate him; and his
steward, William by name, who was the son of his stepmother, the king commanded to be hanged on a
gibbet. Then was also Eoda, Earl of Champagne, the king's soninlaw, and many others, deprived of their
lands; whilst some were led to London, and there killed. This year also, at Easter, there was a very great stir
through all this nation and many others, on account of Urban, who was declared Pope, though he had nothing
of a see at Rome. And an immense multitude went forth with their wives and children, that they might make
war upon the heathens. Through this expedition were the king and his brother, Earl Robert, reconciled; so that
the king went over sea, and purchased all Normandy of him, on condition that they should be united. And the
earl afterwards departed; and with him the Earl of Flanders, and the Earl of Boulogne, and also many other
men of rank (123). And the Earl Robert, and they that went with him, passed the winter in Apulia; but of the
people that went by Hungary many thousands miserably perished there and by the way. And many dragged
themselves home rueful and hungerbitten on the approach of winter. This was a very heavytimed year
through all England, both through the manifold tributes, and also through the very heavytimed hunger that
severely oppressed this earth in the course of the year. In this year also the principal men who held this land,
frequently sent forces into Wales, and many men thereby grievously afflicted, producing no results but
destruction of men and waste of money.
A.D. 1097. In this year was the King William at Christmas in Normandy; and afterwards against Easter he
embarked for this land; for that he thought to hold his court at Winchester; but he was weatherbound until
Eastereve, when he first landed at Arundel; and for this reason held his court at Windsor. And thereafter
with a great army he went into Wales, and quickly penetrated that land with his forces, through some of the
Welsh who were come to him, and were his guides; and he remained in that country from midsummer nearly
until August, and suffered much loss there in men and in horses, and also in many other things. The
Welshmen, after they had revolted from the king, chose them many elders from themselves; one of whom
was called Cadwgan, (124) who was the worthiest of them, being brother's son to King Griffin. And when the
king saw that he could do nothing in furtherance of his will, he returned again into this land; and soon after
that he let his men build castles on the borders. Then upon the feast of St. Michael, the fourth day before the
nones of October, (125) appeared an uncommon star, shining in the evening, and soon hastening to set. It
(126) was seen southwest, and the ray that stood off from it was thought very long, shining southeast. And
it appeared on this wise nearly all the week. Many men supposed that it was a comet. Soon after this
Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury obtained leave (127) of the king (though it was contrary to the wishes of
the king, as men supposed), and went over sea; because he thought that men in this country did little
according to right and after his instruction. And the king thereafter upon St. Martin's mass went over sea into
Normandy; but whilst he was waiting for fair weather, his court in the county where they lay, did the most
harm that ever court or army could do in a friendly and peaceable land. This was in all things a very
heavytimed year, and beyond measure laborious from badness of weather, both when men attempted to till
the land, and afterwards to gather the fruits of their tilth; and from unjust contributions they never rested.
Many counties also that were confined to London by work, were grievously oppressed on account of the wall
that they were building about the tower, and the bridge that was nearly all afloat, and the work of the king's
hall that they were building at Westminster; and many men perished thereby. Also in this same year soon
after Michaelmas went Edgar Etheling with an army through the king's assistance into Scotland, and with
hard fighting won that land, and drove out the King Dufnal; and his nephew Edgar, who was son of King
Malcolm and of Margaret the queen, he there appointed king in fealty to the King William; and afterwards
again returned to England.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 98
Page No 101
A.D. 1098. In this year at Christmas was the King William in Normandy; and Walkelin, Bishop of
Winchester, and Baldwin, Abbot of St. Edmund's, within this tide (128) both departed. And in this year also
died Turold, Abbot of Peterborough. In the summer of this year also, at Finchamstead in Berkshire, a pool
welled with blood, as many true men said that should see it. And Earl Hugh was slain in Anglesey by foreign
pirates, (129) and his brother Robert was his heir, as he had settled it before with the king. Before
Michaelmas the heaven was of such an hue, as if it were burning, nearly all the night. This was a very
troublesome year through manifold impositions; and from the abundant rains, that ceased not all the year,
nearly all the tilth in the marsh lands perished.
A.D. 1099. This year was the King William at midwinter in Normandy, and at Easter came hither to land, and
at Pentecost held his court the first time in his new building at Westminster; and there he gave the bishopric
of Durham to Ranulf his chaplain, who had long directed and governed his councils over all England. And
soon after this he went over sea, and drove the Earl Elias out of Maine, which he reduced under his power,
and so by Michaelmas returned to this land. This year also, on the festival of St. Martin, the seaflood sprung
up to such a height, and did so much harm, as no man remembered that it ever did before. And this was the
first day of the new moon. And Osmond, Bishop of Salisbury, died in Advent.
A.D. 1100. In this year the King William held his court at Christmas in Glocester, and at Easter in
Winchester, and at Pentecost in Westminster. And at Pentecost was seen in Berkshire at a certain town blood
to well from the earth; as many said that should see it. And thereafter on the morning after Lammas day was
the King William shot in hunting, by an arrow from his own men, and afterwards brought to Winchester, and
buried in the cathedral. (130) This was in the thirteenth year after that he assumed the government. He was
very harsh and severe over his land and his men, and with all his neighbours; and very formidable; and
through the counsels of evil men, that to him were always agreeable, and through his own avarice, he was
ever tiring this nation with an army, and with unjust contributions. For in his days all right fell to the ground,
and every wrong rose up before God and before the world. God's church he humbled; and all the bishoprics
and abbacies, whose elders fell in his days, he either sold in fee, or held in his own hands, and let for a certain
sum; because he would be the heir of every man, both of the clergy and laity; so that on the day that he fell he
had in his own hand the archbishopric of Canterbury, with the bishopric of Winchester, and that of Salisbury,
and eleven abbacies, all let for a sum; and (though I may be tedious) all that was loathsome to God and
righteous men, all that was customary in this land in his time. And for this he was loathed by nearly all his
people, and odious to God, as his end testified: for he departed in the midst of his unrighteousness,
without any power of repentance or recompense for his deeds. On the Thursday he was slain; and in the
morning afterwards buried; and after he was buried, the statesmen that were then nigh at hand, chose his
brother Henry to king. And he immediately (131) gave the bishopric of Winchester to William Giffard; and
afterwards went to London; and on the Sunday following, before the altar at Westminster, he promised God
and all the people, to annul all the unrighteous acts that took place in his brother's time, and to maintain the
best laws that were valid in any king's day before him. And after this the Bishop of London, Maurice,
consecrated him king; and all in this land submitted to him, and swore oaths, and became his men. And the
king, soon after this, by the advice of those that were about him, allowed men to take the Bishop Ranulf of
Durham, and bring him into the Tower of London, and hold him there. Then, before Michaelmas, came the
Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury hither to this land; as the King Henry, by the advice of his ministers had
sent after him, because he had gone out of this land for the great wrongs that the King William did unto him.
And soon hereafter the king took him to wife Maud, daughter of Malcolm, King of Scotland, and of Margaret
the good queen, the relative of King Edward, and of the right royal (132) race of England. And on Martinmas
day she was publicly given to him with much pomp at Westminster, and the Archbishop Anselm wedded her
to him, and afterwards consecrated her queen. And the Archbishop Thomas of York soon hereafter died.
During the harvest of this same year also came the Earl Robert home into Normandy, and the Earl Robert of
Flanders, Eustace, Earl of Boulogne, from Jerusalem. And as soon as the Earl Robert came into Normandy,
he was joyfully received by all his people; except those of the castles that were garrisoned with the King
Henry's men. Against them he had many contests and struggles.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VI 99
Page No 102
A.D. 1101. In this year at Christmas held the King Henry his court in Westminster, and at Easter in
Winchester. And soon thereafter were the chief men in this land in a conspiracy against the king; partly from
their own great infidelity, and also through the Earl Robert of Normandy, who with hostility aspired to the
invasion of this land. And the king afterwards sent ships out to sea, to thwart and impede his brother; but
some of them in the time of need fell back, and turned from the king, and surrendered themselves to the Earl
Robert. Then at midsummer went the king out to Pevensey with all his force against his brother, and there
awaited him. But in the meantime came the Earl Robert up at Portsmouth twelve nights before Lammas; and
the king with all his force came against him. But the chief men interceded between them, and settled the
brothers on the condition, "that the king should forego all that he held by main strength in Normandy against
the earl; and that all then in England should have their lands again, who had lost it before through the earl,
and Earl Eustace also all his patrimony in this land; and that the Earl Robert every year should receive from
England three thousand marks of silver; and particularly, that whichever of the brothers should survive the
other, he should be heir of all England and also of Normandy, except the deceased left an heir by lawful
wedlock." And this twelve men of the highest rank on either side then confirmed with an oath. And the earl
afterwards remained in this land till after Michaelmas; and his men did much harm wherever they went, the
while that the earl continued in this land. This year also the Bishop Ranulf at Candlemas burst out of the
Tower of London by night, where he was in confinement, and went into Normandy; through whose
contrivance and instigation mostly the Earl Robert this year sought this land with hostility.
Part VII
A.D. 1102. In this year at the Nativity was the King Henry at Westminster, and at Easter in Winchester. And
soon thereafter arose a dissention between the king and the Earl Robert of Belesme, who held in this land the
earldom of Shrewsbury, that his father, Earl Roger, had before, and much territory therewith both on this side
and beyond the sea. And the king went and beset the castle at Arundel; but when he could not easily win it,
he allowed men to make castles before it, and filled them with his men; and afterwards with all his army he
went to Bridgenorth, and there continued until he had the castle, and deprived the Earl Robert of his land, and
stripped him of all that he had in England. And the earl accordingly went over sea, and the army afterwards
returned home. Then was the king thereafter by Michaelmas at Westminster; and all the principal men in this
land, clerk, and laity. And the Archbishop Anselm held a synod of clergy; and there they established many
canons that belong to Christianity. And many, both French and English, were there deprived of their staves
and dignity, which they either obtained with injustice, or enjoyed with dishonour. And in this same year, in
the week of the feast of Pentecost, there came thieves, some from Auvergne, (133) some from France, and
some from Flanders, and broke into the minster of Peterborough, and therein seized much property in gold
and in silver; namely, roods, and chalices, and candlesticks.
A.D. 1103. In this year, at midwinter, was the King Henry at Westminster. And soon afterwards departed the
Bishop William Giffard out of this land; because he would not against right accept his hood at the hands of
the Archbishop Gerard of York. And then at Easter held the king his court at Winchester, and afterwards
went the Archbishop Anselm from Canterbury to Rome, as was agreed between him and the king. This year
also came the Earl Robert of Normandy to speak with the king in this land; and ere he departed hence he
forgave the King Henry the three thousand marks that he was bound by treaty to give him each year. In this
year also at Hamstead in Berkshire was seen blood [to rise] from the earth. This was a very calamitous year in
this land, through manifold impositions, and through murrain of cattle, and deficiency of produce, not only in
corn, but in every kind of fruit. Also in the morning, upon the mass day of St. Laurence, the wind did so
much harm here on land to all fruits, as no man remembered that ever any did before. In this same year died
Matthias, Abbot of Peterborough, who lived no longer than one year after he was abbot. After Michaelmas,
on the twelfth day before the calends of November, he was in full procession received as abbot; and on the
same day of the next year he was dead at Glocester, and there buried.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 100
Page No 103
A.D. 1104. In this year at Christmas held the King Henry his court at Westminster, and at Easter in
Winchester, and at Pentecost again at Westminster. This year was the first day of Pentecost on the nones of
June; and on the Tuesday following were seen four circles at midday about the sun, of a white hue, each
described under the other as if they were measured. All that saw it wondered; for they never remembered
such before. Afterwards were reconciled the Earl Robert of Normandy and Robert de Belesme, whom the
King Henry had before deprived of his lands, and driven from England; and through their reconciliation the
King of England and the Earl of Normandy became adversaries. And the king sent his folk over sea into
Normandy; and the headmen in that land received them, and with treachery to their lord, the earl, lodged
them in their castles, whence they committed many outrages on the earl in plundering and burning. This year
also William, Earl of Moreton (134) went from this land into Normandy; but after he was gone he acted
against the king; because the king stripped and deprived him of all that he had here in this land. It is not easy
to describe the misery of this land, which it was suffering through various and manifold wrongs and
impositions, that never failed nor ceased; and wheresoever the king went, there was full licence given to his
company to harrow and oppress his wretched people; and in the midst thereof happened oftentimes burnings
and manslaughter. All this was done to the displeasure of God, and to the vexation of this unhappy people.
A.D. 1105. In this year, on the Nativity, held the King Henry his court at Windsor; and afterwards in Lent he
went over sea into Normandy against his brother Earl Robert. And whilst he remained there he won of his
brother Caen and Baieux; and almost all the castles and the chief men in that land were subdued. And
afterwards by harvest he returned hither again; and that which he had won in Normandy remained afterwards
in peace and subjection to him; except that which was anywhere near the Earl William of Moretaine. This he
often demanded as strongly as he could for the loss of his land in this country. And then before Christmas
came Robert de Belesme hither to the king. This was a very calamitous year in this land, through loss of
fruits, and through the manifold contributions, that never ceased before the king went over [to Normandy], or
while he was there, or after he came back again.
A.D. 1106. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at Westminster, and there held his court; and at
that season Robert de Belesme went unreconciled from the king out of his land into Normandy. Hereafter
before Lent was the king at Northampton; and the Earl Robert his brother came thither from Normandy to
him; and because the king would not give him back that which he had taken from him in Normandy, they
parted in hostility; and the earl soon went over sea back again. In the first week of Lent, on the Friday, which
was the fourteenth before the calends of March, in the evening appeared an unusual star; and a long time
afterwards was seen every evening shining awhile. The star appeared in the southwest; it was thought little
and dark; but the train of light which stood from it was very bright, and appeared like an immense beam
shining northeast; and some evening this beam was seen as if it were moving itself forwards against the star.
Some said that they saw more of such unusual stars at this time; but we do not write more fully about it,
because we saw it not ourselves. On the night preceding the Lord's Supper, (135) that is, the Thursday before
Easter, were seen two moons in the heavens before day, the one in the east, and the other in the west, both
full; and it was the fourteenth day of the moon. At Easter was the king at Bath, and at Pentecost at Salisbury;
because he would not hold his court when he was beyond the sea. After this, and before August, went the
king over sea into Normandy; and almost all that were in that land submitted to his will, except Robert de
Belesme and the Earl of Moretaine, and a few others of the principal persons who yet held with the Earl of
Normandy. For this reason the king afterwards advanced with an army, and beset a castle of the Earl of
Moretaine, called Tenerchebrai. (136) Whilst the king beset the castle, came the Earl Robert of Normandy on
Michaelmas eve against the king with his army, and with him Robert of Belesme, and William, Earl of
Moretaine, and all that would be with them; but the strength and the victory were the king's. There was the
Earl of Normandy taken, and the Earl of Moretaine, and Robert of Stutteville, and afterwards sent to England,
and put into custody. Robert of Belesme was there put to flight, and William Crispin was taken, and many
others forthwith. Edgar Etheling, who a little before had gone over from the king to the earl, was also there
taken, whom the king afterwards let go unpunished. Then went the king over all that was in Normandy, and
settled it according to his will and discretion. This year also were heavy and sinful conflicts between the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 101
Page No 104
Emperor of Saxony and his son, and in the midst of these conflicts the father fell, and the son succeeded to
the empire.
A.D. 1107. In this year at Christmas was the King Henry in Normandy; and, having disposed and settled that
land to his will, he afterwards came hither in Lent, and at Easter held his court at Windsor, and at Pentecost in
Westminster. And afterwards in the beginning of August he was again at Westminster, and there gave away
and settled the bishoprics and abbacies that either in England or in Normandy were without elders and
pastors. Of these there were so many, that there was no man who remembered that ever so many together
were given away before. And on this same occasion, among the others who accepted abbacies, Ernulf, who
before was prior at Canterbury, succeeded to the abbacy in Peterborough. This was nearly about seven years
after the King Henry undertook the kingdom, and the one and fortieth year since the Franks governed this
land. Many said that they saw sundry tokens in the moon this year, and its orb increasing and decreasing
contrary to nature. This year died Maurice, Bishop of London, and Robert, Abbot of St. Edmund's bury, and
Richard, Abbot of Ely. This year also died the King Edgar in Scotland, on the ides of January, and Alexander
his brother succeeded to the kingdom, as the King Henry granted him.
A.D. 1108. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at Westminster, and at Easter at Winchester, and
by Pentecost at Westminster again. After this, before August, he went into Normandy. And Philip, the King
of France, died on the nones of August, and his son Louis succeeded to the kingdom. And there were
afterwards many struggles between the King of France and the King of England, while the latter remained in
Normandy. In this year also died the Archbishop Girard of York, before Pentecost, and Thomas was
afterwards appointed thereto.
A.D. 1109. In this year was the King Henry at Christmas and at Easter in Normandy; and before Pentecost he
came to this land, and held his court at Westminster. There were the conditions fully settled, and the oaths
sworn, for giving his daughter (137) to the emperor. (138) This year were very frequent storms of thunder,
and very tremendous; and the Archbishop Anselm of Canterbury died on the eleventh day before the calends
of April; and the first day of Easter was on "Litania major".
A.D. 1110. In this year held the King Henry his court at Christmas in Westminster, and at Easter he was at
Marlborough, and at Pentecost he held his court for the first time in New Windsor. This year before Lent the
king sent his daughter with manifold treasures over sea, and gave her to the emperor. On the fifth night in the
month of May appeared the moon shining bright in the evening, and afterwards by little and little its light
diminished, so that, as soon as night came, (139) it was so completely extinguished withal, that neither light,
nor orb, nor anything at all of it was seen. And so it continued nearly until day, and then appeared shining full
and bright. It was this same day a fortnight old. All the night was the firmament very clear, and the stars over
all the heavens shining very bright. And the fruits of the trees were this night sorely nipt by frost. Afterwards,
in the month of June, appeared a star northeast, and its train stood before it towards the southwest. Thus
was it seen many nights; and as the night advanced, when it rose higher, it was seen going backward toward
the northwest. This year were deprived of their lands Philip of Braiose, and William Mallet, and William
Bainard. This year also died Earl Elias, who held Maine in feetail (140) of King Henry; and after his death
the Earl of Anjou succeeded to it, and held it against the king. This was a very calamitous year in this land,
through the contributions which the king received for his daughter's portion, and through the badness of the
weather, by which the fruits of the earth were very much marred, and the produce of the trees over all this
land almost entirely perished. This year men began first to work at the new minster at Chertsey.
A.D. 1111. This year the King Henry bare not his crown at Christmas, nor at Easter, nor at Pentecost. And in
August he went over sea into Normandy, on account of the broils that some had with him by the confines of
France, and chiefly on account of the Earl of Anjou, who held Maine against him. And after he came over
thither, many conspiracies, and burnings, and harrowings, did they between them. In this year died the Earl
Robert of Flanders, and his son Baldwin succeeded thereto. (141) This year was the winter very long, and the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 102
Page No 105
season heavy and severe; and through that were the fruits of the earth sorely marred, and there was the
greatest murrain of cattle that any man could remember.
A.D. 1112. All this year remained the King Henry in Normandy on account of the broils that he had with
France, and with the Earl of Anjou, who held Maine against him. And whilst he was there, he deprived of
their lands the Earl of Evreux, and William Crispin, and drove them out of Normandy. To Philip of Braiose
he restored his land, who had been before deprived of it; and Robert of Belesme he suffered to be seized, and
put into prison. This was a very good year, and very fruitful, in wood and in field; but it was a very heavy
time and sorrowful, through a severe mortality amongst men.
A.D. 1113. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity and at Easter and at Pentecost in Normandy. And
after that, in the summer, he sent hither Robert of Belesme into the castle at Wareham, and himself soon
(142) afterwards came hither to this land.
A.D. 1114. In this year held the King Henry his court on the Nativity at Windsor, and held no other court
afterwards during the year. And at midsummer he went with an army into Wales; and the Welsh came and
made peace with the king. And he let men build castles therein. And thereafter, in September, he went over
sea into Normandy. This year, in the latter end of May, was seen an uncommon star with a long train, shining
many nights. In this year also was so great an ebb of the tide everywhere in one day, as no man remembered
before; so that men went riding and walking over the Thames eastward of London bridge. This year were
very violent winds in the month of October; but it was immoderately rough in the night of the octave of St.
Martin; and that was everywhere manifest both in town and country. In this year also the king gave the
archbishopric of Canterbury to Ralph, who was before Bishop of Rochester; and Thomas, Archbishop of
York, died; and Turstein succeeded thereto, who was before the king's chaplain. About this same time went
the king toward the sea, and was desirous of going over, but the weather prevented him; then meanwhile sent
he his writ after the Abbot Ernulf of Peterborough, and bade that he should come to him quickly, for that he
wished to speak with him on an interesting subject. When he came to him, he appointed him to the bishopric
of Rochester; and the archbishops and bishops and all the nobility that were in England coincided with the
king. And he long withstood, but it availed nothing. And the king bade the archbishop that he should lead him
to Canterbury, and consecrate him bishop whether he would or not. (143) This was done in the town called
Bourne (144) on the seventeenth day before the calends of October. When the monks of Peterborough heard
of this, they felt greater sorrow than they had ever experienced before; because he was a very good and
amiable man, and did much good within and without whilst he abode there. God Almighty abide ever with
him. Soon after this gave the king the abbacy to a monk of Sieyes, whose name was John, through the
intreaty of the Archbishop of Canterbury. And soon after this the king and the Archbishop of Canterbury sent
him to Rome after the archbishop's pall; and a monk also with him, whose name was Warner, and the
Archdeacon John, the nephew of the archbishop. And they sped well there. This was done on the seventh day
before the calends Of October, in the town that is yclept Rowner. And this same day went the king on board
ship at Portsmouth.
A.D. 1115. This year was the King Henry on the Nativity in Normandy. And whilst he was there, he
contrived that all the head men in Normandy did homage and fealty to his son William, whom he had by his
queen. And after this, in the month of July, he returned to this land. This year was the winter so severe, with
snow and with frost, that no man who was then living ever remembered one more severe; in consequence of
which there was great destruction of cattle. During this year the Pope Paschalis sent the pall into this land to
Ralph, Archbishop of Canterbury; and he received it with great worship at his archiepiscopal stall in
Canterbury. It was brought hither from Rome by Abbot Anselm, who was the nephew of Archbishop Anselm,
and the Abbot John of Peterborough.
A.D. 1116. In this year was the King Henry on the Nativity at St. Alban's, where he permitted the
consecration of that monastery; and at Easter he was at Odiham. And there was also this year a very
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 103
Page No 106
heavytimed winter, strong and long, for cattle and for all things. And the king soon after Easter went over
sea into Normandy. And there were many conspiracies and robberies, and castles taken betwixt France and
Normandy. Most of this disturbance was because the King Henry assisted his nephew, Theobald de Blois,
who was engaged in a war against his lord, Louis, the King of France. This was a very vexatious and
destructive year with respect to the fruits of the earth, through the immoderate rains that fell soon after the
beginning of August, harassing and perplexing men till Candlemasday. This year also was so deficient in
mast, that there was never heard such in all this land or in Wales. This land and nation were also this year oft
and sorely swincked by the guilds which the king took both within the boroughs and without. In this same
year was consumed by fire the whole monastery of Peterborough, and all the buildings, except the
chapterhouse and the dormitory, and therewith also all the greater part of the town. All this happened on a
Friday, which was the second day before the nones of August.
A.D. 1117. All this year remained the King Henry, in Normandy, on account of the hostility of the King of
France and his other neighbours. And in the summer came the King of France and the Earl of Flanders with
him with an army into Normandy. And having stayed therein one night, they returned again in the morning
without fighting. But Normandy was very much afflicted both by the exactions and by the armies which the
King Henry collected against them. This nation also was severely oppressed through the same means,
namely, through manifold exactions. This year also, in the night of the calends of December, were
immoderate storms with thunder, and lightning, and rain, and hail. And in the night of the third day before the
ides of December was the moon, during a long time of the night, as if covered with blood, and afterwards
eclipsed. Also in the night of the seventeenth day before the calends of January, was the heaven seen very
red, as if it were burning. And on the octave of St. John the Evangelist was the great earthquake in Lombardy;
from the shock of which many minsters, and towers, and houses fell, and did much harm to men. This was a
very blighted year in corn, through the rains that scarcely ceased for nearly all the year. And the Abbot
Gilbert of Westminster died on the eighth day before the ides of December; and Faritz, Abbot of Abingdon,
on the seventh day before the calends of March. And in this same year....
A.D. 1118. All this year abode the King Henry in Normandy on account of the war of the King of France and
the Earl of Anjou, and the Earl of Flanders. And the Earl of Flanders was wounded in Normandy, and went so
wounded into Flanders. By this war was the king much exhausted, and he was a great loser both in land and
money. And his own men grieved him most, who often from him turned, and betrayed him; and going over to
his foes surrendered to them their castles, to the injury and disappointment of the king. All this England
dearly bought through the manifold guilds that all this year abated not. This year, in the week of the
Epiphany, there was one evening a great deal of lightning, and thereafter unusual thunder. And the Queen
Matilda died at Westminster on the calends of May; and there was buried. And the Earl Robert of Mellent
died also this year. In this year also, on the feast of St. Thomas, was so very immoderately violent a wind,
that no man who was then living ever remembered any greater; and that was everywhere seen both in houses
and also in trees. This year also died Pope Paschalis; and John of Gaeta succeeded to the popedom, whose
other name was Gelasius.
A.D. 1119. All this year continued the King Henry in Normandy; and he was greatly perplexed by the
hostility of the King of France, and also of his own men, who with treachery deserted from him, and oft
readily betrayed him; until the two kings came together in Normandy with their forces. There was the King of
France put to flight, and all his best men taken. And afterwards many of King Henry's men returned to him,
and accorded with him, who were before, with their castellans, against him. And some of the castles he took
by main strength. This year went William, the son of King Henry and Queen Matilda, into Normandy to his
father, and there was given to him, and wedded to wife, the daughter of the Earl of Anjou. On the eve of the
mass of St. Michael was much earthheaving in some places in this land; though most of all in Glocestershire
and in Worcestershire. In this same year died the Pope Gelasius, on this side of the Alps, and was buried at
Clugny. And after him the Archbishop of Vienna was chosen pope, whose name was Calixtus. He afterwards,
on the festival of St. Luke the Evangelist, came into France to Rheims, and there held a council. And the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 104
Page No 107
Archbishop Turstin of York went thither; and, because that he against right, and against the archiepiscopal
stall in Canterbury, and against the king's will, received his hood at the hands of the pope, the king interdicted
him from all return to England. And thus he lost his archbishopric, and with the pope went towards Rome. In
this year also died the Earl Baldwin of Flanders of the wounds that he received in Normandy. And after him
succeeded to the earldom Charles, the son of his uncle by the father's side, who was son of Cnute, the holy
King of Denmark.
A.D. 1120. This year were reconciled the King of England and the King of France; and after their
reconciliation all the King Henry's own men accorded with him in Normandy, as well as the Earl of Flanders
and the Earl of Ponthieu. From this time forward the King Henry settled his castles and his land in Normandy
after his will; and so before Advent came to this land. And in this expedition were drowned the king's two
sons, William and Richard, and Richard, Earl of Chester, and Ottuel his brother, and very many of the king's
household, stewards, and chamberlains, and butlers. and men of various abodes; and with them a countless
multidude of very incomparable folk besides. Sore was their death to their friends in a twofold respect: one,
that they so suddenly lost this life; the other, that few of their bodies were found anywhere afterwards. This
year came that light to the sepulchre of the Lord in Jerusalem twice; once at Easter, and the other on the
assumption of St. Mary, as credible persons said who came thence. And the Archbishop Turstin of York was
through the pope reconciled with the king, and came to this land, and recovered his bishopric, though it was
very undesirable to the Archbishop of Canterbury.
A.D. 1121. This year was the King Henry at Christmas at Bramton, and afterwards, before Candlemas, at
Windsor was given him to wife Athelis; soon afterwards consecrated queen, who was daughter of the Duke
of Louvain. And the moon was eclipsed in the night of the nones of April, being a fortnight old. And the king
was at Easter at Berkley; and after that at Pentecost he held a full court at Westminster; and afterwards in the
summer went with an army into Wales. And the Welsh came against him; and after the king's will they
accorded with him. This year came the Earl of Anjou from Jerusalem into his land; and soon after sent hither
to fetch his daughter, who had been given to wife to William, the king's son. And in the night of the eve of
"Natalis Domini" was a very violent wind over all this land, and that was in many things evidently seen.
A.D. 1122. In this year was the King Henry at Christmas in Norwich, and at Easter in Northampton. And in
the Lenttide before that, the town of Glocester was on fire: the while that the monks were singing their
mass, and the deacon had begun the gospel, "Praeteriens Jesus", at that very moment came the fire from the
upper part of the steeple, and burned all the minster, and all the treasures that were there within; except a few
books, and three masshackles. That was on the eighth day before the ides of Marcia. And thereafter, the
Tuesday after PalmSunday, was a very violent wind on the eleventh day before the calends of April; after
which came many tokens far and wide in England, and many spectres were both seen and heard. And the
eighth night before the calends of August was a very violent earthquake over all Somersetshire, and in
Glocestershire. Soon after, on the sixth day before the ides of September, which was on the festival of St.
Mary, (145) there was a very violent wind from the fore part of the day to the depth of the night. This same
year died Ralph, the Archbishop of Canterbury; that was on the thirteenth day before the calends of
November. After this there were many shipmen on the sea, and on fresh water, who said, that they saw on the
northeast, level with the earth, a fire huge and broad, which anon waxed in length up to the welkin; and the
welkin undid itself in four parts, and fought against it, as if it would quench it; and the fire waxed
nevertheless up to the heaven. The fire they saw in the daydawn; and it lasted until it was light over all. That
was on the seventh day before the ides of December.
A.D. 1123. In this year was the King Henry, at Christmastide at Dunstable, and there came to him the
ambassadors of the Earl of Anjou. And thence he went to Woodstock; and his bishops and his whole court
with him. Then did it betide on a Wednesday, which was on the fourth day before the ides of January, that the
king rode in his deerfold; (146) the Bishop Roger of Salisbury (147) on one side of him, and the Bishop
Robert Bloet of Lincoln on the other side of him. And they rode there talking together. Then sank down the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 105
Page No 108
Bishop of Lincoln, and said to the king, "Lord king, I die." And the king alighted down from his horse, and
lifted him betwixt his arms, and let men bear him home to his inn. There he was soon dead; and they carried
him to Lincoln with great worship, and buried him before the altar of St. Mary. And the Bishop of Chester,
whose name was Robert Pecceth, buried him. Soon after this sent the king his writ over all England, and bade
all his bishops and his abbots and his thanes, that they should come to his wittenmoot on Candlemas day at
Glocester to meet him: and they did so. When they were there gathered together, then the king bade them,
that they should choose for themselves an Archbishop of Canterbury, whomsoever they would, and he would
confirm it. Then spoke the bishops among themselves, and said that they never more would have a man of the
monastic order as archbishop over them. And they went all in a body to the king, and earnestly requested that
they might choose from the clerical order whomsoever they would for archbishop. And the king granted it to
them. This was all concerted before, through the Bishop of Salisbury, and through the Bishop of Lincoln ere
he was dead; for that they never loved the rule of monks, but were ever against monks and their rule. And the
prior and the monks of Canterbury, and all the other persons of the monastic order that were there, withstood
it full two days; but it availed nought: for the Bishop of Salisbury was strong, and wielded all England, and
opposed them with all his power and might. Then chose they a clerk, named William of Curboil. He was
canon of a monastery called Chiche. (148) And they brought him before the king; and the king gave him the
archbishopric. And all the bishops received him: but almost all the monks, and the earls, and the thanes that
were there, protested against him. About the same time departed the earl's messengers (149) in hostility from
the king, reckless of his favour. During the same time came a legate from Rome, whose name was Henry. He
was abbot of the monastery of St. John of Angeli; and he came after the Romescot. And he said to the king,
that it was against right that men should set a clerk over monks; and therefore they had chosen an archbishop
before in their chapter after right. But the king would not undo it, for the love of the Bishop of Salisbury.
Then went the archbishop, soon after this, to Canterbury; and was there received, though it was against their
will; and he was there soon blessed to bishop by the Bishop of London, and the Bishop Ernulf of Rochester,
and the Bishop William Girard of Winchester, and the Bishop Bernard of Wales, and the Bishop Roger of
Salisbury. Then, early in Lent, went the archbishop to Rome, after his pall; and with him went the Bishop
Bernard of Wales; and Sefred, Abbot of Glastonbury; and Anselm, Abbot of St. Edmund's bury; and John,
Archdeacon of Canterbury; and Gifard, who was the king's courtchaplain. At the same time went the
Archbishop Thurstan of York to Rome, through the behest of the pope, and came thither three days ere the
Archbishop of Canterbury came, and was there received with much worship. Then came the Archbishop of
Canterbury, and was there full seven nights ere they could come to a conference with the pope. That was,
because the pope was made to understand that he had obtained the archbishopric against the monks of the
minster, and against right. But that overcame Rome, which overcometh all the world; that is, gold and silver.
And the pope softened, and gave him his pall. And the archbishop (of York) swore him subjection, in all
those things, which the pope enjoined him, by the heads of St. Peter and St. Paul; and the pope then sent him
home with his blessing. The while that the archbishop was out of the land, the king gave the bishopric of Bath
to the Queen's chancellor, whose name was Godfrey. He was born in Louvain. That was on the Annunciation
of St. Mary, at Woodstock. Soon after this went the king to Winchester, and was all Eastertide there. And
the while that he was there, gave he the bishopric of Lincoln to a clerk hight Alexander. He was nephew of
the Bishop of Salisbury. This he did all for the love of the bishop. Then went the king thence to Portsmouth,
and lay there all over Pentecost week. Then, as soon as he had a fair wind, he went over into Normandy; and
meanwhile committed all England to the guidance and government of the Bishop Roger of Salisbury. Then
was the king all this year (150) in Normandy. And much hostility arose betwixt him and his thanes; so that
the Earl Waleram of Mellent, and Hamalric, and Hugh of Montfort, and William of Romare, and many
others, went from him, and held their castles against him. And the king strongly opposed them: and this same
year he won of Waleram his castle of PontAudemer, and of Hugh that of Montfort; and ever after, the
longer he stayed, the better he sped. This same year, ere the Bishop of Lincoln came to his bishopric, almost
all the borough of Lincoln was burned, and numberless folks, men and women, were consumed: and so much
harm was there done as no man could describe to another. That was on the fourteenth day before the calends
of June.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 106
Page No 109
A.D. 1124. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy. That was for the great hostility that he had with
the King Louis of France, and with the Earl of Anjou, and most of all with his own men. Then it happened,
on the day of the Annunciation of St. Mary, that the Earl Waleram of Mellent went from one of his castles
called Belmont to another called Watteville. With him went the steward of the King of France, Amalric, and
Hugh the son of Gervase, and Hugh of Montfort, and many other good knights. Then came against them the
king's knights from all the castles that were thereabout, and fought with them, and put them to flight, and took
the Earl Waleram, and Hugh, the son of Gervase, and Hugh of Montfort, and five and twenty other knights,
and brought them to the king. And the king committed the Earl Waleram, and Hugh, the son of Gervase, to
close custody in the castle at Rouen; but Hugh of Montfort he sent to England, and ordered him to be secured
with strong bonds in the castle at Glocester. And of the others as many as he chose he sent north and south to
his castles in captivity. After this went the king, and won all the castles of the Earl Waleram that were in
Normandy, and all the others that his enemies held against him. All this hostility was on account of the son of
the Earl Robert of Normandy, named William. This same William had taken to wife the younger daughter of
Fulke, Earl of Anjou: and for this reason the King of France and all the earls held with him, and all the rich
men; and said that the king held his brother Robert wrongfully in captivity, and drove his son William
unjustly out of Normandy. This same year were the seasons very unfavourable in England for corn and all
fruits; so that between Christmas and Candlemas men sold the acreseed of wheat, that is two seedlips, for
six shillings; and the barley, that is three seedlips, for six shillings also; and the acreseed of oats, that is four
seedlips, for four shillings. That was because that corn was scarce; and the penny was so adulterated, (151)
that a man who had a pound at a market could not exchange twelve pence thereof for anything. In this same
year died the blessed Bishop Ernulf of Rochester, who before was Abbot of Peterborough. That was on the
ides of March. And after this died the King Alexander of Scotland, on the ninth day before the calends of
May. And David his brother, who was Earl of Northamptonshire, succeeded to the kingdom; and had both
together, the kingdom of Scotland and the earldom in England. And on the nineteenth day before the calends
of January died the Pope of Rome, whose name was Calixtus, and Honorius succeeded to the popedom. This
same year, after St. Andrew's mass, and before Christmas, held Ralph Basset and the king's thanes a
wittenmoot in Leicestershire, at Huncothoe, and there hanged more thieves than ever were known before; that
is, in a little while, four and forty men altogether; and despoiled six men of their eyes and of their testicles.
Many true men said that there were several who suffered very unjustly; but our Lord God Almighty, who
seeth and knoweth every secret, seeth also that the wretched people are oppressed with all unrighteousness.
First they are bereaved of their property, and then they are slain. Full heavy year was this. The man that had
any property, was bereaved of it by violent guilds and violent moots. The man that had not, was starved with
hunger.
A.D. 1125. In this year sent the King Henry, before Christmas, from Normandy to England, and bade that all
the mintmen that were in England should be mutilated in their limbs; that was, that they should lose each of
them the right hand, and their testicles beneath. This was because the man that had a pound could not lay out
a penny at a market. And the Bishop Roger of Salisbury sent over all England, and bade them all that they
should come to Winchester at Christmas. When they came thither, then were they taken one by one, and
deprived each of the right hand and the testicles beneath. All this was done within the twelfthnight. And that
was all in perfect justice, because that they had undone all the land with the great quantity of base coin that
they all bought. In this same year sent the Pope of Rome to this land a cardinal, named John of Crema. He
came first to the king in Normandy, and the king received him with much worship. He betook himself then to
the Archbishop William of Canterbury; and he led him to Canterbury; and he was there received with great
veneration, and in solemn procession. And he sang the high mass on Easter day at the altar of Christ.
Afterwards he went over all England, to all the bishoprics and abbacies that were in this land; and in all he
was received with respect. And all gave him many and rich gifts. And afterwards he held his council in
London full three days, on the Nativity of St. Mary in September, with archbishops, and diocesan bishops,
and abbots, the learned and the lewd; (152) and enjoined there the same laws that Archbishop Anselm had
formerly enjoined, and many more, though it availed little. Thence he went over sea soon after Michaelmas,
and so to Rome; and (with him) the Archbishop William of Canterbury, and the Archbishop Thurstan of
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 107
Page No 110
York, and the Bishop Alexander of Lincoln, and the Bishop J. of Lothian, and the Abbot G. of St. Alban's;
and were there received by the Pope Honorius with great respect; and continued there all the winter. In this
same year was so great a flood on St. Laurence's day, that many towns and men were overwhelmed, and
bridges broken down, and corn and meadows spoiled withal; and hunger and qualm (153) in men and in
cattle; and in all fruits such unseasonableness as was not known for many years before. And this same year
died the Abbot John of Peterborough, on the second day before the ides of October.
A.D. 1126. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy all till after harvest. Then came he to this land,
betwixt the Nativity of St. Mary and Michaelmas. With him came the queen, and his daughter, whom he had
formerly given to the Emperor Henry of Lorrain to wife. And he brought with him the Earl Waleram, and
Hugh, the son of Gervase. And the earl he sent to Bridgenorth in captivity: and thence he sent him afterwards
to Wallingford; and Hugh to Windsor, whom he ordered to be kept in strong bonds. Then after Michaelmas
came David, the king of the Scots, from Scotland to this land; and the King Henry received him with great
worship; and he continued all that year in this land. In this year the king had his brother Robert taken from
the Bishop Roger of Salisbury, and committed him to his son Robert, Earl of Glocester, and had him led to
Bristol, and there put into the castle. That was all done through his daughter's counsel, and through David, the
king of the Scots, her uncle.
A.D. 1127. This year held the King Henry his court at Christmas in Windsor. There was David the king of the
Scots, and all the head men that were in England, learned and lewd. And there he engaged the archbishops,
and bishops, and abbots, and earls, and all the thanes that were there, to swear England and Normandy after
his day into the hands of his daughter Athelicia, who was formerly the wife of the Emperor of Saxony.
Afterwards he sent her to Normandy; and with her went her brother Robert, Earl of Glocester, and Brian, son
of the Earl Alan Fergan; (154) and he let her wed the son of the Earl of Anjou, whose name was Geoffry
Martel. All the French and English, however, disapproved of this; but the king did it for to have the alliance
of the Earl of Anjou, and for to have help against his nephew William. In the Lenttide of this same year was
the Earl Charles of Flanders slain in a church, as he lay there and prayed to God, before the altar, in the midst
of the mass, by his own men. And the King of France brought William, the son of the Earl of Normandy, and
gave him the earldom; and the people of that land accepted him. This same William had before taken to wife
the daughter of the Earl of Anjou; but they were afterwards divorced on the plea of consanguinity. This was
all through the King Henry of England. Afterwards took he to wife the sister of the king's wife of France; and
for this reason the king gave him the earldom of Flanders. This same year he (155) gave the abbacy of
Peterborough to an abbot named Henry of Poitou, who retained in hand his abbacy of St. John of Angeli; but
all the archbishops and bishops said that it was against right, and that he could not have two abbacies on
hand. But the same Henry gave the king to understand, that he had relinquished his abbacy on account of the
great hostility that was in the land; and that he did through the counsel and leave of the Pope of Rome, and
through that of the Abbot of Clugny, and because he was legate of the Romescot. But, nevertheless, it was
not so; for he would retain both in hand; and did so as long as God's will was. He was in his clerical state
Bishop of Soissons; afterwards monk of Clugny; and then prior in the same monastery. Afterwards he
became prior of Sevigny; and then, because he was a relation of the King of England, and of the Earl of
Poitou, the earl gave him the abbacy of St. John's minster of Angeli. Afterwards, through his great craft, he
obtained the archbishopric of Besancon; and had it in hand three days; after which he justly lost it, because he
had before unjustly obtained it. Afterwards he procured the bishopric of Saintes; which was five miles from
his abbey. That he had fullnigh a week (156) in hand; but the Abbot of Clugny brought him thence, as he
before did from Besancon. Then he bethought him, that, if he could be fastrooted in England, he might have
all his will. Wherefore he besought the king, and said unto him, that he was an old man a man completely
broken that he could not brook the great injustice and the great hostility that were in their land: and then,
by his own endearours, and by those of all his friends, he earnestly and expressly entreated for the abbacy of
Peterborough. And the king procured it for him, because he was his relation, and because he was the principal
person to make oath and bear witness when the son of the Earl of Normandy and the daughter of the Earl of
Anjou were divorced on the plea of consanguinity. Thus wretchedly was the abbacy given away, betwixt
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 108
Page No 111
Christmas and Candlemas, at London; and so he went with the King to Winchester, and thence he came to
Peterborough, and there he dwelt (157) right so as a drone doth in a hive. For as the drone fretteth and
draggeth fromward all that the bees drag toward [the hive], so did he. All that he might take, within and
without, of learned and lewd, so sent he over sea; and no good did there no good left there. Think no man
unworthily that we say not the truth; for it was fully known over all the land: that, as soon as he came thither,
which was on the Sunday when men sing "Exurge quare o D etc." immediately after, several persons saw
and heard many huntsmen hunting. The hunters were swarthy, and huge, and ugly; and their hounds were all
swarthy, and broadeyed, and ugly. And they rode on swarthy horses, and swarthy bucks. This was seen in
the very deerfold in the town of Peterborough, and in all the woods from that same town to Stamford. And
the monks heard the horn blow that they blew in the night. Credible men, who watched them in the night,
said that they thought there might well be about twenty or thirty hornblowers. This was seen and heard from
the time that he (158) came thither, all the Lenttide onward to Easter. This was his entry; of his exit we can
as yet say nought. God provide.
A.D. 1128. All this year was the King Henry in Normandy, on account of the hostility that was between him
and his nephew, the Earl of Flanders. But the earl was wounded in a fight by a swain; and so wounded he
went to the monastery of St. Bertin; where he soon became a monk, lived five days afterwards, then died, and
was there buried. God honour his soul. That was on the sixth day before the calends of August. This same
year died the Bishop Randulph Passeflambard of Durham; and was there buried on the nones of September.
And this same year went the aforesaid Abbot Henry home to his own minster at Poitou by the king's leave.
He gave the king to understand, that he would withal forgo that minster, and that land, and dwell with him in
England, and in the monastery of Peterborough. But it was not so nevertheless. He did this because he would
be there, through his crafty wiles, were it a twelvemonth or more, and come again afterwards. May God
Almighty extend his mercy over that wretched place. This same year came from Jerusalem Hugh of the
Temple to the king in Normandy; and the king received him with much honour, and gave him rich presents in
gold and in silver. And afterwards he sent him into England; and there he was received by all good men, who
all gave him presents, and in Scotland also: and by him they sent to Jerusalem much wealth withal in gold
and in silver. And he invited folk out to Jerusalem; and there went with him and after him more people than
ever did before, since that the first expedition was in the day of Pope Urban. Though it availed little; for he
said, that a mighty war was begun between the Christians and the heathens; but when they came thither, then
was it nought but leasing. (159) Thus pitifully was all that people swinked. (160)
A.D. 1129. In this year sent the King to England after the Earl Waleram, and after Hugh, the son of Gervase.
And they gave hostages for them. And Hugh went home to his own land in France; but Waleram was left
with the king: and the king gave him all his land except his castle alone. Afterwards came the king to England
within the harvest: and the earl came with him: and they became as good friends as they were foes before.
Soon after, by the king's counsel, and by his leave, sent the Archbishop William of Canterbury over all
England, and bade bishops, and abbots, and archdeacons, and all the priors, monks, and canons, that were in
all the cells in England, and all who had the care and superintendence of christianity, that they should all
come to London at Michaelmas, and there should speak of all God's rights. When they came thither, then
began the moot on Monday, and continued without intermission to the Friday. When it all came forth, then
was it all found to be about archdeacons' wives, and about priests' wives; that they should forgo them by St.
Andrew's mass; and he who would not do that, should forgo his church, and his house, and his home, and
never more have any calling thereto. This bade the Archbishop William of Canterbury, and all the diocesan
bishops that were then in England, but the king gave them all leave to go home. And so they went home; and
all the ordinances amounted to nothing. All held their wives by the king's leave as they did before. This same
year died the Bishop William Giffard of Winchester; and was there buried, on the eighth day before the
calends of February. And the King Henry gave the bishopric after Michaelmas to the Abbot Henry of
Glastonbury, his nephew, and he was consecrated bishop by the Archbishop William of Canterbury on the
fifteenth day before the calends of December. This same year died Pope Honorius. Ere he was well dead,
there were chosen two popes. The one was named Peter, who was monk of Clugny, and was born of the
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 109
Page No 112
richest men of Rome; and with him held those of Rome, and the Duke of Sicily. The other was Gregory: he
was a clerk, and was driven out of Rome by the other pope, and by his kinsmen. With him held the Emperor
of Saxony, and the King of France, and the King Henry of England, and all those on this side of the Alps.
Now was there such division in Christendom as never was before. May Christ consult for his wretched folk.
This same year, on the night of the mass of St. Nicholas, a little before day, there was a great earthquake.
A.D. 1130. This year was the monastery of Canterbury consecrated by the Archbishop William, on the fourth
day before the nones of May. There were the Bishops John of Rochester, Gilbert Universal of London, Henry
of Winchester, Alexander of Lincoln, Roger of Salisbury, Simon of Worcester, Roger of Coventry, Geoffry
of Bath, Evrard of Norwich, Sigefrith of Chichester, Bernard of St. David's, Owen of Evreux in Normandy,
John of Sieyes. On the fourth day after this was the King Henry in Rochester, when the town was almost
consumed by fire; and the Archbishop William consecrated the monastery of St. Andrew, and the aforesaid
bishops with him. And the King Henry went over sea into Normandy in harvest. This same year came the
Abbot Henry of Angeli after Easter to Peterborough, and said that he had relinquished that monastery (161)
withal. After him came the Abbot of Clugny, Peter by name, to England by the king's leave; and was received
by all, whithersoever he came, with much respect. To Peterborough he came; and there the Abbot Henry
promised him that he would procure him the minster of Peterborough, that it might be subject to Clugny. But
it is said in the proverb, "The hedge abideth, that acres divideth." May God Almighty frustrate evil designs.
Soon after this, went the Abbot of Clugny home to his country. This year was Angus slain by the army of the
Scots, and there was a great multitude slain with him. There was God's fight sought upon him, for that he was
all forsworn.
A.D. 1131. This year, after Christmas, on a Monday night, at the first sleep, was the heaven on the northern
hemisphere (162) all as if it were burning fire; so that all who saw it were so dismayed as they never were
before. That was on the third day before the ides of January. This same year was so great a murrain of cattle
as never was before in the memory of man over all England. That was in neat cattle and in swine; so that in a
town where there were ten ploughs going, or twelve, there was not left one: and the man that had two
hundred or three hundred swine, had not one left. Afterwards perished the hen fowls; then shortened the
fleshmeat, and the cheese, and the butter. May God better it when it shall be his will. And the King Henry
came home to England before harvest, after the mass of St. Peter "ad vincula". This same year went the
Abbot Henry, before Easter, from Peterborough over sea to Normandy, and there spoke with the king, and
told him that the Abbot of Clugny had desired him to come to him, and resign to him the abbacy of Angeli,
after which he would go home by his leave. And so he went home to his own minster, and there remained
even to midsummer day. And the next day after the festival of St. John chose the monks an abbot of
themselves, brought him into the church in procession, sang "Te Deum laudamus", rang the bells, set him on
the abbot's throne, did him all homage, as they should do their abbot: and the earl, and all the head men, and
the monks of the minster, drove the other Abbot Henry out of the monastery. And they had need; for in
fiveandtwenty winters had they never hailed one good day. Here failed him all his mighty crafts. Now it
behoved him, that he crope in his skin into every corner, if peradventure there were any unresty wrench,
(163) whereby he might yet once more betray Christ and all Christian people. Then retired he into Clugny,
where he was held so fast, that he could not move east or west. The Abbot of Clugny said that they had lost
St. John's minster through him, and through his great sottishness. Then could he not better recompense them;
but he promised them, and swore oaths on the holy cross, that if he might go to England he should get them
the minster of Peterborough; so that he should set there the prior of Clugny, with a churchwarden, a treasurer,
and a sacristan: and all the things that were within the minster and without, he should procure for them. Thus
he departed into France; and there remained all that year. Christ provide for the wretched monks of
Peterborough, and for that wretched place. Now do they need the help of Christ and of all Christian folk.
A.D. 1132. This year came King Henry to this land. Then came Abbot Henry, and betrayed the monks of
Peterborough to the king, because he would subject that minster to Clugny; so that the king was well nigh
entrapped, and sent after the monks. But through the grace of God, and through the Bishop of Salisbury, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 110
Page No 113
the Bishop of Lincoln, and the other rich men that were there, the king knew that he proceeded with
treachery. When he no more could do, then would he that his nephew should be Abbot of Peterborough. But
Christ forbade. Not very long after this was it that the king sent after him, and made him give up the Abbey
of Peterborough, and go out of the land. And the king gave the abbacy to a prior of St. Neot's, called Martin,
who came on St. Peter's massday with great pomp into the minster.
A.D. 1135. In this year went the King Henry over sea at the Lammas; and the next day, as he lay asleep on
ship, the day darkened over all lands, and the sun was all as it were a three night old moon, and the stars
about him at midday. Men were very much astonished and terrified, and said that a great event should come
hereafter. So it did; for that same year was the king dead, the next day after St. Andrew's massday, in
Normandy. Then was there soon tribulation in the land; for every man that might, soon robbed another. Then
his sons and his friends took his body, and brought it to England, and buried it at Reading. A good man he
was; and there was great dread of him. No man durst do wrong with another in his time. Peace he made for
man and beast. Whoso bare his burthen of gold and silver, durst no man say ought to him but good.
Meanwhile was his nephew come to England, Stephen de Blois. He came to London, and the people of
London received him, and sent after the Archbishop William Curboil, and hallowed him to king on midwinter
day. In this king's time was all dissention, and evil, and rapine; for against him rose soon the rich men who
were traitors; and first of all Baldwin de Redvers, who held Exeter against him. But the king beset it; and
afterwards Baldwin accorded. Then took the others, and held their castles against him; and David, King of
Scotland, took to Wessington against him. Nevertheless their messengers passed between them; and they
came together, and were settled, but it availed little.
A.D. 1137. This year went the King Stephen over sea to Normandy, and there was received; for that they
concluded that he should be all such as the uncle was; and because he had got his treasure: but he dealed it
out, and scattered it foolishly. Much had King Henry gathered, gold and silver, but no good did men for his
soul thereof. When the King Stephen came to England, he held his council at Oxford; where he seized the
Bishop Roger of Sarum, and Alexander, Bishop of Lincoln, and the chancellor Roger, his nephew; and threw
all into prison till they gave up their castles. When the traitors understood that he was a mild man, and soft,
and good, and no justice executed, then did they all wonder. They had done him homage, and sworn oaths,
but they no truth maintained. They were all forsworn, and forgetful of their troth; for every rich man built his
castles, which they held against him: and they filled the land full of castles. They cruelly oppressed the
wretched men of the land with castleworks; and when the castles were made, they filled them with devils
and evil men. Then took they those whom they supposed to have any goods, both by night and by day,
labouring men and women, and threw them into prison for their gold and silver, and inflicted on them
unutterable tortures; for never were any martyrs so tortured as they were. Some they hanged up by the feet,
and smoked them with foul smoke; and some by the thumbs, or by the head, and hung coats of mail on their
feet. They tied knotted strings about their heads, and twisted them till the pain went to the brains. They put
them into dungeons, wherein were adders, and snakes, and toads; and so destroyed them. Some they placed in
a crucethouse; that is, in a chest that was short and narrow, and not deep; wherein they put sharp stones, and
so thrust the man therein, that they broke all the limbs. In many of the castles were things loathsome and
grim, called "Sachenteges", of which two or three men had enough to bear one. It was thus made: that is,
fastened to a beam; and they placed a sharp iron [collar] about the man's throat and neck, so that he could in
no direction either sit, or lie, or sleep, but bear all that iron. Many thousands they wore out with hunger. I
neither can, nor may I tell all the wounds and all the pains which they inflicted on wretched men in this land.
This lasted the nineteen winters while Stephen was king; and it grew continually worse and worse. They
constantly laid guilds on the towns, and called it "tenserie"; and when the wretched men had no more to give,
then they plundered and burned all the towns; that well thou mightest go a whole day's journey and never
shouldest thou find a man sitting in a town, nor the land tilled. Then was corn dear, and flesh, and cheese, and
butter; for none was there in the land. Wretched men starved of hunger. Some had recourse to alms, who
were for a while rich men, and some fled out of the land. Never yet was there more wretchedness in the land;
nor ever did heathen men worse than they did: for, after a time, they spared neither church nor churchyard,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 111
Page No 114
but took all the goods that were therein, and then burned the church and all together. Neither did they spare a
bishop's land, or an abbot's, or a priest's, but plundered both monks and clerks; and every man robbed another
who could. If two men, or three, came riding to a town, all the township fled for them, concluding them to be
robbers. The bishops and learned men cursed them continually, but the effect thereof was nothing to them; for
they were all accursed, and forsworn, and abandoned. To till the ground was to plough the sea: the earth bare
no corn, for the land was all laid waste by such deeds; and they said openly, that Christ slept, and his saints.
Such things, and more than we can say, suffered we nineteen winters for our sins. In all this evil time held
Abbot Martin his abbacy twenty years and a half, and eight days, with much tribulation; and found the monks
and the guests everything that behoved them; and held much charity in the house; and, notwithstanding all
this, wrought on the church, and set thereto lands and rents, and enriched it very much, and bestowed
vestments upon it. And he brought them into the new minster on St. Peter's massday with much pomp;
which was in the year, from the incarnation of our Lord, 1140, and in the twentythird from the destruction
of the place by fire. And he went to Rome, and there was well received by the Pope Eugenius; from whom he
obtained their privileges: one for all the lands of the abbey, and another for the lands that adjoin to the
churchyard; and, if he might have lived longer, so he meant to do concerning the treasury. And he got in the
lands that rich men retained by main strength. Of William Malduit, who held the castle of Rockingham, he
won Cotingham and Easton; and of Hugh de Walteville, he won Hirtlingbury and Stanwick, and sixty
shillings from Oldwinkle each year. And he made many monks, and planted a vineyard, and constructed
many works, and made the town better than it was before. He was a good monk, and a good man; and for this
reason God and good men loved him. Now we will relate in part what happened in King Stephen's time. In
his reign the Jews of Norwich bought a Christian child before Easter, and tortured him after the same manner
as our Lord was tortured; and on Long Friday (164) hanged him on a rood, in mockery of our Lord, and
afterwards buried him. They supposed that it would be concealed, but our Lord showed that he was a holy
martyr. And the monks took him, and buried him with high honour in the minster. And through our Lord he
worketh wonderful and manifold miracles, and is called St. William.
A.D. 1138. In this year came David, King of Scotland, with an immense army to this land. He was ambitious
to win this land; but against him came William, Earl of Albemarle, to whom the king had committed York,
and other borderers, with few men, and fought against them, and routed the king at the Standard, and slew
very many of his gang.
A.D. 1140. In this year wished the King Stephen to take Robert, Earl of Gloucester, the son of King Henry;
but he could not, for he was aware of it. After this, in the Lent, the sun and the day darkened about the
noontide of the day, when men were eating; and they lighted candles to eat by. That was the thirteenth day
before the kalends of April. Men were very much struck with wonder. Thereafter died William, Archbishop
of Canterbury; and the king made Theobald archbishop, who was Abbot of Bec. After this waxed a very great
war betwixt the king and Randolph, Earl of Chester; not because he did not give him all that he could ask
him, as he did to all others; but ever the more he gave them, the worse they were to him. The Earl held
Lincoln against the king, and took away from him all that he ought to have. And the king went thither, and
beset him and his brother William de Romare in the castle. And the earl stole out, and went after Robert, Earl
of Glocester, and brought him thither with a large army. And they fought strenuously on Candlemas day
against their lord, and took him; for his men forsook him and fled. And they led him to Bristol, and there put
him into prison in close quarters. Then was all England stirred more than ere was, and all evil was in the land.
Afterwards came the daughter of King Henry, who had been Empress of Germany, and now was Countess of
Anjou. She came to London; but the people of London attempted to take her, and she fled, losing many of her
followers. After this the Bishop of Winchester, Henry, the brother of King Stephen, spake with Earl Robert,
and with the empress, and swore them oaths, "that he never more would hold with the king, his brother," and
cursed all the men that held with him, and told them, that he would give them up Winchester; and he caused
them to come thither. When they were therein, then came the king's queen with all her strength, and beset
them, so that there was great hunger therein. When they could no longer hold out, then stole they out, and
fled; but those without were aware, and followed them, and took Robert, Earl of Glocester, and led him to
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 112
Page No 115
Rochester, and put him there into prison; but the empress fled into a monastery. Then went the wise men
between the king's friends and the earl's friends; and settled so that they should let the king out of prison for
the earl, and the earl for the king; and so they did. After this settled the king and Earl Randolph at Stamford,
and swore oaths, and plighted their troth, that neither should betray the other. But it availed nothing. For the
king afterwards took him at Northampton, through wicked counsel, and put him into prison; and soon after he
let him out again, through worse counsel, on the condition that he swore by the crucifix, and found hostages,
that he would give up all his castles. Some he gave up, and some gave he not up; and did then worse than he
otherwise would. Then was England very much divided. Some held with the king, and some with the
empress; for when the king was in prison, the earls and the rich men supposed that he never more would
come out: and they settled with the empress, and brought her into Oxford, and gave her the borough. When
the king was out, he heard of this, and took his force, and beset her in the tower. (165) And they let her down
in the night from the tower by ropes. And she stole out, and fled, and went on foot to Wallingford.
Afterwards she went over sea; and those of Normandy turned all from the king to the Earl of Anjou; some
willingly, and some against their will; for he beset them till they gave up their castles, and they had no help of
the king. Then went Eustace, the king's son, to France, and took to wife the sister of the King of France. He
thought to obtain Normandy thereby; but he sped little, and by good right; for he was an evil man. Wherever
he was, he did more evil than good; he robbed the lands, and levied heavy guilds upon them. He brought his
wife to England, and put her into the castle at... (166) Good woman she was; but she had little bliss with him;
and Christ would not that he should long reign. He therefore soon died, and his mother also. And the Earl of
Anjou died; and his son Henry took to the earldom. And the Queen of France parted from the king; and she
came to the young Earl Henry; and he took her to wife, and all Poitou with her. Then went he with a large
force into England, and won some castles; and the king went against him with a much larger force.
Nevertheless, fought they not; but the archbishop and the wise men went between them, and made this
settlement: That the king should be lord and king while he lived, and after his day Henry should be king: that
Henry should take him for a father; and he him for a son: that peace and union should be betwixt them, and in
all England. This and the other provisions that they made, swore the king and the earl to observe; and all the
bishops, and the earls, and the rich men. Then was the earl received at Winchester, and at London, with great
worship; and all did him homage, and swore to keep the peace. And there was soon so good a peace as never
was there before. Then was the king stronger than he ever was before. And the earl went over sea; and all
people loved him; for he did good justice, and made peace.
A.D. 1154. In this year died the King Stephen; and he was buried where his wife and his son were buried, at
Faversham; which monastery they founded. When the king died, then was the earl beyond sea; but no man
durst do other than good for the great fear of him. When he came to England, then was he received with great
worship, and blessed to king in London on the Sunday before midwinter day. And there held he a full court.
The same day that Martin, Abbot of Peterborough, should have gone thither, then sickened he, and died on
the fourth day before the nones of January; and the monks, within the day, chose another of themselves,
whose name was William de Walteville, (167) a good clerk, and good man, and well beloved of the king, and
of all good men. And all the monks buried the abbot with high honours. And soon the newly chosen abbot,
and the monks with him, went to Oxford to the king. And the king gave him the abbacy; and he proceeded
soon afterwards to Peterborough; where he remained with the abbot, ere he came home. And the king was
received with great worship at Peterborough, in full procession. And so he was also at Ramsey, and at
Thorney, and at.... and at Spalding, and at....
ENDNOTES:
(1) This introductory part of the "Chronicle" to An. I. first
printed by Gibson from the Laud MS. only, has been corrected
by a collation of two additional MSS. in the British Museum,
"Cotton Tiberius B" lv. and "Domitianus A" viii. Some
defects are also here supplied. The materials of this part
are to be found in Pliny, Solinus, Orosius, Gildas, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 113
Page No 116
Bede. The admeasurement of the island, however inaccurate,
is from the best authorities of those times, and followed by
much later historians.
(2) Gibson, following the Laud MS. has made six nations of five,
by introducing the British and Welsh as two distinct tribes.
(3) "De tractu Armoricano." Bede, "Ecclesiastical History" i.
I. The word Armenia occurring a few lines above in Bede, it
was perhaps inadvertently written by the Saxon compiler of
the "Chronicle" instead of Armorica.
(4) In case of a disputed succession, "Ubi res veniret in
dabium," etc. Bede, "Ecclesiastical History" i. I.
(5) Reada, Aelfr.; Reuda, Bede, Hunt. etc. Perhaps it was
originally Reutha or Reotha.
(6) This is an error, arising from the inaccurately written MSS.
of Orosius and Bede; where "in Hybernia" and "in Hiberniam"
occur for "in hiberna". The error is retained in Wheloc's
Bede.
(7) Labienus = Laberius. Venerable Bede also, and Orosius, whom
he follows verbatim, have "Labienus". It is probably a
mistake of some very ancient scribe, who improperly supplied
the abbreviation "Labius" (for "Laberius") by "Labienus".
(8) Of these early transactions in Britain King Alfred supplies
us with a brief but circumstantial account in his Saxon
paraphrase of "Orosius".
(9) "8 die Aprilis", Flor. M. West.
(10) Gibbon regrets this chronology, i.e. from the creation of
the world, which he thinks preferable to the vulgar mode
from the Christian aera. But how vague and uncertain the
scale which depends on a point so remote and undetermined as
the precise time when the world was created. If we examine
the chronometers of different writers we shall find a
difference, between the maximum and the minimum, of 3368
years. The Saxon chronology seems to be founded on that of
Eusebius, which approaches the medium between the two
extremes.
(11) An. 42, Flor. This act is attributed by Orosius, and Bede
who follows him, to the threatening conduct of Caligula,
with a remark, that it was he (Pilate) who condemned our
Lord to death.
(12) An. 48, Flor. See the account of this famine in King
Alfred's "Orosius".
(13) Those writers who mention this discovery of the holy cross,
by Helena the mother of Constantine, disagree so much in
their chronology, that it is a vain attempt to reconcile
them to truth or to each other. This and the other notices
of ecclesiastical matters, whether Latin or Saxon, from the
year 190 to the year 380 of the Laud MS. and 381 of the
printed Chronicle, may be safely considered as
interpolations, probably posterior to the Norman Conquest.
(14) This is not to be understood strictly; gold being used as a
general term for money or coin of every description; great
quantities of which, it is well known, have been found at
different times, and in many different places, in this
island: not only of gold, but of silver, brass, copper, etc.
(15) An interpolated legend, from the "Gesta Pontificum",
repeated by Bede, Florence, Matth. West., Fordun, and
others. The head was said to be carried to Edessa.
(16) Merely of those called from him "Benedictines". But the
compiler of the Cotton MS., who was probably a monk of that
order, seems not to acknowledge any other. Matthew of
Westminster places his death in 536.
(17) For an interesting and minute account of the arrival of
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 114
Page No 117
Augustine and his companions in the Isle of Thanet, their
entrance into Canterbury, and their general reception in
England, vid. Bede, "Hist. Eccles." i. 25, and the following
chapters, with the Saxon translation by King Alfred. The
succeeding historians have in general repeated the very
words of Bede.
(18) It was originally, perhaps, in the MSS. ICC. the
abbreviation for 1,200; which is the number of the slain in
Bede. The total number of the monks of Bangor is said to
have been 2,100; most of whom appear to have been employed
in prayer on this occasion, and only fifty escape by flight.
Vide Bede, "Hist. Eccles." ii. 2, and the tribe of Latin
historians who copy him.
(19) Literally, "swinged, or scourged him." Both Bede and Alfred
begin by recording the matter as a vision, or a dream;
whence the transition is easy to a matter of fact, as here
stated by the Norman interpolators of the "Saxon Annals".
(20) This epithet appears to have been inserted in some copies of
the "Saxon Chronicle" so early as the tenth century; to
distinguish the "old" church or minster at Winchester from
the "new", consecrated A.D. 903.
(21) Beverleyminster, in Yorkshire.
(22) He was a native of Tarsus in Cilicia, the birthplace of St.
Paul.
(23) This brief notice of Dryhtelm, for so I find the name
written in "Cotton Tiberius B iv." is totally unintelligible
without a reference to Bede's "Ecclesiastical History", v.
12; where a curious account of him may be found, which is
copied by Matthew of Westminster, anno. 699.
(25) Wothnesbeorhge, Ethelw.; Wonsdike, Malmsb.; Wonebirih, H.
Hunt; Wodnesbeorh, Flor.; Wodnesbirch, M. West. There is no
reason, therefore, to transfer the scene of action to
Woodbridge, as some have supposed from an erroneous reading.
(26) The establishment of the "English school" at Rome is
attributed to Ina; a full account of which, and of the
origin of "Romescot" or "Peterpence" for the support of it,
may be seen in Matthew of Westminster.
(27) Beorgforda, Ethelw.; Beorhtforda, Flor.; Hereford and
Bereford, H. Hunt; Beorford, M. West. This battle of
Burford has been considerably amplified by Henry of
Huntingdon, and after him by Matthew of Westminster. The
former, among other absurdities, talks of "Amazonian"
battleaxes. They both mention the banner of the "golden
dragon" etc.
(28) The minuteness of this narrative, combined with the
simplicity of it, proves that it was written at no great
distance of time from the event. It is the first that
occurs of any length in the older MSS. of the "Saxon
Chronicle".
(29) Penga in the original, i.e. "of pence", or "in pence";
because the silver penny, derived from the Roman "denarius",
was the standard coin in this country for more than a
thousand years. It was also used as a weight, being the
twentieth part of an ounce.
(30) Since called "sheriff"; i.e. the reve, or steward, of the
shire. "Exactor regis". Ethelw.
(31) This is the Grecian method of computation; between the hours
of three and six in the morning. It must be recollected,
that before the distribution of time into hours, minutes,
and seconds, the day and night were divided into eight equal
portions, containing three hours each; and this method was
continued long afterwards by historians.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 115
Page No 118
(32) This wanton act of barbarity seems to have existed only in
the depraved imagination of the Norman interpolator of the
"Saxon Annals", who eagerly and impatiently dispatches the
story thus, in order to introduce the subsequent account of
the synod at Bapchild, so important in his eyes. Hoveden
and Wallingford and others have repeated the idle tale; but
I have not hitherto found it in any historian of authority.
(33) St. Kenelm is said to have succeeded Cenwulf:
"In the foure and twentithe yere of his kyngdom
Kenulf wente out of this worlde, and to the joye of
hevene com;
It was after that oure Lord in his moder alygte
Eigte hondred yet and neygentene, by a countes rigte,
Seint Kenelm his yonge sone in his sevende yere
Kyng was ymad after him, theg he yong were."
"Vita S. Kenelmi, MS. Coll. Trin Oxon."
No. 57.Arch.
(34) i.e. the Danes; or, as they are sometimes called, Northmen,
which is a general term including all those numerous tribes
that issued at different times from the north of Europe,
whether Danes, Norwegians, Sweons, Jutes, or Goths, etc.;
who were all in a state of paganism at this time.
(35) Aetheredus, Asser, Ethelwerd, etc. We have therefore
adopted this orthography.
(36) It is now generally written, as pronounced, "Swanage".
(37) For a more circumstantial account of the Danish or Norman
operations against Paris at this time, the reader may
consult Felibien, "Histoire de la Ville de Paris", liv. iii.
and the authorities cited by him in the margin. This is
that celebrated siege of Paris minutely described by Abbo,
Abbot of Fleury, in two books of Latin hexameters; which,
however barbarous, contain some curious and authentic matter
relating to the history of that period.
(38) This bridge was built, or rebuilt on a larger plan than
before, by Charles the Bald, in the year 861, "to prevent
the Danes or Normans (says Felibien) from making themselves
masters of Paris so easily as they had already done so many
times," etc. "pour empescher que les Normans ne se
rendissent maistres de Paris aussi facilement qu'ils
l'avoient deja fait tant de lois," etc. Vol. i. p. 91,
folio. It is supposed to be the famous bridge afterwards
called "grand pont" or "pont au change", the most ancient
bridge at Paris, and the only one which existed at this
time.
(39) Or, in Holmsdale, Surry: hence the proverb
"This is Holmsdale,
Never conquer'd, never shall."
(40) The pirates of Armorica, now Bretagne; so called, because
they abode day and night in their ships; from lid, a ship,
and wiccian, to watch or abide day and night.
(41) So I understand the word. Gibson, from Wheloc, says "in
aetatis vigore;" a fact contradicted by the statement of
almost every historian. Names of places seldom occur in old
MSS. with capital initials.
(42) i.e. the feast of the Holy Innocents; a festival of great
antiquity.
(43) i.e. the secular clergy, who observed no rule; opposed to
the regulars, or monks.
(44) This poetical effusion on the coronation, or rather
consecration, of King Edgar, as well as the following on his
death, appears to be imitated in Latin verse by Ethelwerd at
the end of his curious chronicle. This seems at least to
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 116
Page No 119
prove that they were both written very near the time, as
also the eulogy on his reign, inserted 959.
(45) The following passage from Cotton Tiberius B iv., relating
to the accession of Edward the Martyr, should be added here
In his days,
On account of his youth,
The opponents of God
Broke through God's laws;
Alfhere alderman,
And others many;
And marr'd monastic rules;
Minsters they razed,
And monks drove away,
And put God's laws to flight
Laws that King Edgar
Commanded the holy
Saint Ethelwold bishop
Firmly to settle
Widows they stript
Oft and at random.
Many breaches of right
And many bad laws
Have arisen since;
And aftertimes
Prove only worse.
Then too was Oslac
The mighty earl
Hunted from England's shores.
(46) Florence of Worcester mentions three synods this year;
Kyrtlinege, Calne, and Ambresbyrig.
(47) Vid. "Hist. Eliens." ii. 6. He was a great benefactor to
the church of Ely.
(48) This was probably the veteran historian of that name, who
was killed in the severe encounter with the Danes at Alton
(Aethelingadene) in the year 1001.
(49) i.e. at Canterbury. He was chosen or nominated before, by
King Ethelred and his council, at Amesbury: vid. an. 994.
This notice of his consecration, which is confirmed by
Florence of Worcester, is now first admitted into the text
on the authority of three MSS.
(50) Not the present district socalled, but all that north of
the Sea of Severn, as opposed to WestWales, another name
for Cornwall.
(51) See a more full and circumstantial account of these events,
with some variation of names, in Florence of Worcester.
(52) The successor of Elfeah, or Alphege, in the see of
Winchester, on the translation of the latter to the
archiepiscopal see of Canterbury.
(53) This passage, though very important, is rather confused,
from the Variations in the MSS.; so that it is difficult to
ascertain the exact proportion of ships and armour which
each person was to furnish. "Vid. Flor." an. 1008.
(54) These expressions in the present tense afford a strong proof
that the original records of these transactions are nearly
coeval with the transactions themselves. Later MSS. use the
past tense.
(55) i.e. the Chiltern Hills; from which the southeastern part
of Oxfordshire is called the Chiltern district.
(56) "Leofruna abbatissa". Flor. The insertion of this
quotation from Florence of Worcester is important, as it
confirms the reading adopted in the text. The abbreviation
"abbt", instead of "abb", seems to mark the abbess. She was
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 117
Page No 120
the last abbess of St. Mildred's in the Isle of Thanet; not
Canterbury, as Harpsfield and Lambard say.
(57) This was a title bestowed on the queen.
(58) The "seven" towns mentioned above are reduced here to
"five"; probably because two had already submitted to the
king on the death of the two thanes, Sigferth and Morcar.
These five were, as originally, Leicester, Lincoln,
Stamford, Nottingham, and Derby. Vid. an. 942, 1013.
(59) There is a marked difference respecting the name of this
alderman in MSS. Some have Ethelsy, as above; others,
Elfwine, and Ethelwine. The two last may be reconciled, as
the name in either case would now be Elwin; but Ethelsy, and
Elsy are widely different. Florence of Worcester not only
supports the authority of Ethelwine, but explains it "Dei
amici."
(60) Matthew of Westminster says the king took up the body with
his own hands.
(61) Leofric removed the see to Exeter.
(62) So Florence of Worcester, whose authority we here follow for
the sake of perspicuity, though some of these events are
placed in the MSS. to very different years; as the story of
Beorn.
(63) i.e. The ships of Sweyne, who had retired thither, as before
described.
(64) "Vid. Flor." A.D. 1049, and verbatim from him in the same
year, Sim. Dunelm. "inter X. Script. p. 184, I, 10. See
also Ordericus Vitalis, A.D. 1050. This dedication of the
church of St. Remi, a structure well worth the attention of
the architectural antiquary, is still commemorated by an
annual loire, or fair, on the first of October, at which the
editor was present in the year 1815, and purchased at a
stall a valuable and scarce history of Rheims, from which he
extracts the following account of the synod mentioned above:
"Il fut assemble a l'occasion de la dedicace de la
nouvelle eglise qu' Herimar, abbe de ce monastere, avoit
fait batir, seconde par les liberalites des citoyens, etc."
("Hist. de Reims", p. 226.) But, according to our
Chronicle, the pope took occasion from this synod to make
some general regulations which concerned all Christendom.
(65) Hereman and Aldred, who went on a mission to the pope from
King Edward, as stated in the preceding year.
(66) Nine ships were put out of commission the year before; but
five being left on the paylist for a twelvemonth, they were
also now laid up.
(67) The ancient name of Westminster; which came into disuse
because there was another Thorney in Cambridgeshire.
(68) i.e. at Gloucester, according to the printed Chronicle;
which omits all that took place in the meantime at London
and Southwark.
(69) Now Westminster.
(70) i.e. Earl Godwin and his crew.
(71) i.e. from the Isle of Portland; where Godwin had landed
after the plunder of the Isle of Wight.
(72) i.e. Dungeness; where they collected all the ships stationed
in the great bay formed by the ports of Romney, Hithe, and
Folkstone.
(73) i.e. Godwin and his son Harold.
(74) i.e. the tide of the river.
(75) Godwin's earldom consisted of Wessex, Sussex, and Kent:
Sweyn's of Oxford, Gloucester, Hereford, Somerset, and
Berkshire: and Harold's of Essex, EastAnglia, Huntingdon,
and Cambridgeshire.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 118
Page No 121
(76) The church, dedicated to St. Olave, was given by Alan Earl
of Richmond, about thirtythree years afterwards, to the
first abbot of St. Mary's in York, to assist him in the
construction of the new abbey. It appears from a MS. quoted
by Leland, that Boothambar was formerly called "Galman
hithe", not Galmanlith, as printed by Tanner and others.
(77) Called St. Ethelbert's minster; because the relics of the
holy King Ethelbert were there deposited and preserved.
(78) The place where this army was assembled, though said to be
very nigh to Hereford, was only so with reference to the
great distance from which some part of the forces came; as
they were gathered from all England. They met, I
conjecture, on the memorable spot called "Harold's Cross",
near Cheltenham, and thence proceeded, as here stated, to
Gloucester.
(79) This was no uncommon thing among the Saxon clergy, bishops
and all. The tone of elevated diction in which the writer
describes the military enterprise of Leofgar and his
companions, testifies his admiration.
(80) See more concerning him in Florence of Worcester. His lady,
Godiva, is better known at Coventry. See her story at large
in Bromton and Matthew of Westminster.
(81) He died at his villa at Bromleage (Bromley in
Staffordshire). Flor.
(82) He built a new church from the foundation, on a larger plan.
The monastery existed from the earliest times.
(83) Florence of Worcester says, that he went through Hungary to
Jerusalem.
(84) This must not be confounded with a spiresteeple. The
expression was used to denote a tower, long before spires
were invented.
(85) Lye interprets it erroneously the "festival" of St. Martin.
"ad S. Martini festum:" whereas the expression relates to
the place, not to the time of his death, which is mentioned
immediately afterwards.
(86) This threnodia on the death of Edward the Confessor will be
found to correspond, both in metre and expression, with the
poetical paraphrase of Genesis ascribed to Caedmon.
(87) These facts, though stated in one MS. only, prove the early
cooperation of Tosty with the King of Norway. It is
remarkable that this statement is confirmed by Snorre, who
says that Tosty was with Harald, the King of Norway, in all
these expeditions. Vid "Antiq. CeltoScand." p. 204.
(88) i.e. Harold, King of England; "our" king, as we find him
Afterwards called in B iv., to distinguish him from Harald,
King of Norway.
(89) Not only the twelve smacks with which he went into Scotland
during the summer, as before stated, but an accession of
force from all quarters.
(90) On the north bank of the Ouse, according to Florence of
Worcester; the enemy having landed at Richale (now
"Riccal"). Simeon of Durham names the spot "Apud Fulford,"
i.e. Fulfordwater, south of the city of York.
(91) It is scarcely necessary to observe that the term "English"
begins about this time to be substituted for "Angles"; and
that the Normans are not merely the Norwegians, but the
Danes and other adventurers from the north, joined with the
forces of France and Flanders; who, we shall presently see,
overwhelmed by their numbers the expiring, liberties of
England. The Franks begin also to assume the name of
Frencyscan or "Frenchmen".
(92) i.e. in the expedition against the usurper William.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 119
Page No 122
(93) i.e. threw off their allegiance to the Norman usurper,
and became voluntary outlaws. The habits of these outlaws,
or, at least, of their imitators and descendants in the next
century, are well described in the romance of "Ivanhoe".
(94) The author of the GalloNorman poem printed by Sparke
elevates his diction to a higher tone, when describing the
feasts of this same Hereward, whom he calls "le uthlage
hardi."
(95) Or much "coin"; many "scaettae"; such being the denomination
of the silver money of the Saxons.
(96) Florence of Worcester and those who follow him say that
William proceeded as far as Abernethy; where Malcolm met
him, and surrendered to him.
(97) Whence he sailed to Bretagne, according to Flor. S. Dunelm,
etc.; but according to Henry of Huntingdon he fled directly
to Denmark, returning afterwards with Cnute and Hacco, who
invaded England With a fleet of 200 sail.
(98) i.e. Earl Waltheof.
(99) This notice of St. Petronilla, whose name and existence seem
scarcely to have been known to the Latin historians, we owe
exclusively to the valuable MS. "Cotton Tiberius" B lv. Yet
if ever female saint deserved to be commemorated as a
conspicuous example of early piety and christian zeal, it
must be Petronilla.
(100) The brevity of our Chronicle here, and in the two following
years, in consequence of the termination of "Cotton
Tiberius" B iv., is remarkable. From the year 1083 it
assumes a character more decidedly AngloNorman.
(101) i.e. In the service; by teaching them a newfangled chant,
brought from Feschamp in Normandy, instead of that to which
they had been accustomed, and which is called the Gregorian
chant.
(102) Literally, "afeared of them" i.e. terrified by them.
(103) Probably along the open galleries in the upper story of the
choir.
(104) "Slaegan", in its first sense, signifies "to strike
violently"; whence the term "sledgehammer". This
consideration will remove the supposed pleonasm in the Saxon
phrase, which is here literally translated.
(105) "Gild," Sax.; which in this instance was a landtax of one
shilling to a yardland.
(106) and of Clave Kyrre, King of Norway. Vid. "Antiq.
CeltoScand".
(107) Because there was a mutiny in the Danish fleet; which was
carried to such a height, that the king, after his return to
Denmark, was slain by his own subjects. Vid. "Antiq. Celto
Scand", also our "Chronicle" A.D. 1087.
(108) i.e. a fourth part of an acre.
(109) At Winchester; where the king held his court at Easter in
the following year; and the survey was accordingly deposited
there; whence it was called "Rotulus Wintoniae", and "Liber
Wintoniae".
(110) An evident allusion to the compilation of Doomsday book,
already described in A.D. 1085.
(111) Uppeland, Sax. i.e. villagechurch.
(112) i.e. jurisdiction. We have adopted the modern title of the
district; but the Saxon term occurs in many of the ancient
evidences of Berkeley Castle.
(113) i.e. of the conspirators.
(114) Literally "became his man" "Ic becom eowr man" was the
formula of doing homage.
(115) Literally a "gossip"; but such are the changes which words
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 120
Page No 123
undergo in their meaning as well as in their form, that a
title of honour formerly implying a spiritual relationship
in God, is now applied only to those whose conversation
resembles the contemptible tittletattle of a Christening.
(116) From this expression it is evident, that though preference
was naturally and properly given to hereditary claims, the
monarchy of Scotland, as well as of England, was in
principle "elective". The doctrine of hereditary, of
divine, of indefeasible "right", is of modern growth.
(117) See the following year towards the end, where Duncan is
said to be slain.
(118) Peitevin, which is the connecting link between
"Pictaviensem" and "Poitou".
(119) Now called Southampton, to distinguish it from Northampton,
but the common people in both neighbourhoods generally say
"Hamton" to this day (1823).
(120) The title is now Earl of Shrewsbury.
(121) The fourth of April. Vid. "Ord. Vit."
(122) Commonly called "Peterpence".
(123) Literally "headmen, or chiefs". The term is still
retained with a slight variation in the north of Europe, as
the "hetman" Platoff of celebrated memory.
(124) This name is now written, improperly, Cadogan; though the
ancient pronunciation continues. "Cadung", "Ann. Wav."
erroneously, perhaps, for "Cadugn".
(125) It was evidently, therefore, not on Michaelmas day, but
during the continuance of the mass or festival which was
celebrated till the octave following.
(126) In the original "he"; so that the Saxons agreed with the
Greeks and Romans with respect to the gender of a comet.
(127) Literally "took leave": hence the modern phrase to signify
the departure of one person from another, which in feudal
times could not be done without leave or permission formally
obtained.
(128) That is, within the twelve days after Christmas, or the
interval between Christmas day, properly called the
Nativity, and the Epiphany, the whole of which was called
Christmastide or Yuletide, and was dedicated to feasting
and mirth.
(129) The King of Norway and his men. "Vid. Flor."
(130) His monument is still to be seen there, a plain gravestone
of black marble, of the common shape called "dos d'ane";
such as are now frequently seen, though of inferior
materials, in the churchyards of villages; and are only one
remove from the grassy sod.
(131) i.e. before he left Winchester for London; literally
"thereright" an expression still used in many parts of
England. Neither does the word "directly", which in its
turn has almost become too vulgar to be used, nor its
substitute, "immediately", which has nearly superseded it,
appear to answer the purpose so well as the Saxon, which is
equally expressive with the French "sur le champ".
(132) This expression shows the adherence of the writer to the
Saxon line of kings, and his consequent satisfaction in
recording this alliance of Henry with the daughter of
Margaret of Scotland.
(133) "Auvergne" at that time was an independent province, and
formed no part of France. About the middle of the
fourteenth century we find Jane, Countess of Auvergne and
Boulogne, and Queen of France, assisting in the dedication
of the church of the Carmelites at Paris, together with
Queen Jeanne d'Evreux, third wife and widow of Charles IV.,
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 121
Page No 124
Blanche of Navarre, widow of Philip VI., and Jeanne de
France, Queen of Navarre. Felib. "Histoire de Paris",
vol. I, p. 356.
(134) A title taken from a town in Normandy, now generally
written Moretaine, or Moretagne; de Moreteon, de Moritonio,
Flor.
(135) "cena Domini" commonly called Maundy Thursday.
(136) Now Tinchebrai.
(137) Matilda, Mathilde, or Maud.
(138) Henry V. of Germany, the son of Henry IV.
(139) Or, "in the early part of the night," etc.
(140) That is, the territory was not a "fee simple", but subject
to "taillage" or taxation; and that particular species is
probably here intended which is called in old French "en
queuage", an expression not very different from that in the
text above.
(141) i.e. to the earldom of Flanders.
(142) "Mense Julio". Flor.
(143) We have still the form of saying "Nolo episcopari", when a
see is offered to a bishop.
(144) i.e. East Bourne in Sussex; where the king was waiting for
a fair wind to carry him over sea.
(145) The Nativity of the Virgin Mary.
(146) i.e. an inclosure or park for deer. This is now called
Blenheim Park, and is one of the few old parks which still
remain in this country.
(147) This may appear rather an anticipation of the modern see of
Salisbury, which was not then in existence; the borough of
Old Saturn, or "Saresberie", being then the episcopal seat.
(148) St. Osythe, in Essex; a priory rebuilt A. 1118, for canons
of the Augustine order, of which there are considerable remains.
(149) i.e. Of the Earl of Anjou.
(150) The writer means, "the remainder of this year"; for the
feast of Pentecost was already past, before the king left
England.
(151) The pennies, or pence, it must be remembered, were of
silver at this time.
(152) i.e. Clergy and laity.
(153) This word is still in use, but in a sense somewhat
different; as qualms of conscience, etc.
(154) See an account of him in "Ord. Vit." 544. Conan, another
son of this Alan, Earl of Brittany, married a daughter of
Henry I.
(155) i.e. Henry, King of England.
(156) "A se'nnight", the space of seven nights; as we still say,
"a fortnight", i.e. the space of fourteen nights. The
French express the space of one week by "huit jours", the
origin of the "octave" in English law; of two by "quinte
jours". So "septimana" signifies "seven mornings"; whence
the French word "semaine".
(157) Literally, "woned". Vid Chaucer, "Canterbury Tales", v.
7745. In Scotland, a lazy indolent manner of doing anything
is called "droning".
(158) The Abbot Henry of Angeli.
(159) "Thou shalt destroy them that speak `leasing,'" etc.
"Psalms".
(160) i.e. Vexed, harassed, fatigued, etc. Milton has used the
word in the last sense.
(161) The monastery of Angeli.
(162) Aurora Borealis, or the northern lights.
(163) "Any restless manoeuvre or stratagem." Both words occur in
Chaucer. See "Troilus and Criseyde", v. 1355, and
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 122
Page No 125
"Canterbury Tales", v. 16549. The idea seems to be taken
from the habits of destructive and undermining vermin.
(164) Now called "GoodFriday".
(165) The tower of the castle at Oxford, built by D'Oyley, which
still remains.
(166) The MS. is here deficient.
(167) Or Vaudeville.
The AngloSaxon Chronicle
Part VII 123
Bookmarks
1. Table of Contents, page = 3
2. The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, page = 4
3. Anonymous, page = 4
4. PREPARER'S NOTE: , page = 4
5. ORIGINAL INTRODUCTION TO INGRAM'S EDITION [1823], page = 5
6. THE ANGLO-SAXON CHRONICLE, page = 13
7. Part I, page = 13
8. Part II, page = 31
9. Part III, page = 48
10. Part IV, page = 63
11. Part V, page = 77
12. Part VI, page = 90
13. Part VII, page = 103